Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n appear_v great_a king_n 1,466 5 3.5285 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A15415 Hexapla in Danielem: that is, A six-fold commentarie vpon the most diuine prophesie of Daniel wherein according to the method propounded in Hexapla vpon Genesis and Exodus, sixe things are obserued in euery chapter. 1. The argument and method. 2. The diuers readings. 3. The questions discussed. 4. Doctrines noted. 5. Controversies handled. 6. Morall observations applyed. Wherein many obscure visions, and diuine prophesies are opened, and difficult questions handled with great breuitie, perspicuitie, and varietie ... and the best interpreters both old and new are therein abridged. Diuided into two bookes ... By Andrevv Willet Professour of Diuinitie. The first booke. Willet, Andrew, 1562-1621. 1610 (1610) STC 25689; ESTC S118243 838,278 539

There are 40 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o follow_v his_o own_o ireful_a affection_n the_o proceed_n be_v unjust_a polan_n beside_o their_o devilish_a profession_n it_o seem_v they_o be_v ambitious_a and_o insolent_a and_o envious_a against_o daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o their_o punishment_n be_v just_a bull_v 2._o lyranus_fw-la excuse_v the_o king_n fact_n because_o he_o have_v be_v at_o great_a cost_n in_o maintain_v these_o enchanter_n and_o soothsayer_n he_o have_v raise_v they_o to_o honour_n give_v they_o great_a gift_n and_o now_o when_o he_o require_v some_o service_n of_o they_o they_o be_v able_a to_o say_v nothing_o 3._o but_o yet_o nabuchadnezzer_n be_v diverse_a way_n faulty_a in_o this_o action_n 1._o in_o his_o rash_a and_o inconsiderate_a sentence_n which_o he_o pronounce_v against_o they_o in_o his_o rage_n and_o fury_n whereas_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n shall_v proceed_v with_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o advice_n for_o like_a as_o saturn_n the_o high_a of_o the_o planet_n have_v the_o slow_a motion_n of_o they_o all_o so_o prince_n which_o sit_v in_o their_o high_a throne_n of_o majesty_n shall_v be_v most_o considerate_a in_o their_o action_n and_o as_o a_o musician_n do_v not_o present_o cut_v away_o his_o string_n if_o they_o be_v out_o of_o tune_n but_o do_v wind_v they_o to_o and_o fro_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o right_a harmony_n so_o neither_o shall_v a_o prince_n punish_v every_o disorder_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n present_o with_o death_n pintus_fw-la 2._o an_o other_o point_n of_o injustice_n be_v that_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o call_v all_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o babylon_n and_o yet_o unheard_a and_o uncalled_a command_v they_o to_o be_v slay_v 3._o it_o be_v also_o unjust_a for_o some_o few_o man_n fault_n to_o take_v revenge_n of_o the_o whole_a profession_n and_o so_o to_o punish_v one_o for_o a_o other_o offence_n osiand_n 16._o quest._n v_o 13._o whether_o the_o wise_a man_n in_o deed_n be_v slay_v 1._o some_o think_v that_o praeparabantur_fw-la tantum_fw-la occidi_fw-la they_o be_v only_o prepare_v and_o appoint_v to_o be_v slay_v not_o that_o they_o be_v indeed_o slay_v so_o lyran._n gloss_n interlin_fw-mi hugo_n car._n but_o the_o contrary_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o text_n for_o the_o sentence_n be_v go_v forth_o that_o be_v proclaim_v and_o publish_v it_o islike_v some_o execution_n follow_v otherwise_o the_o proclamation_n shall_v have_v seem_v to_o be_v ridiculous_a calvin_n and_o beside_o see_v daniel_n be_v also_o seek_v to_o be_v slay_v it_o seem_v that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o way_n and_o at_o hand_n and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o be_v put_v to_o the_o sword_n 2._o wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o of_o these_o wiseman_n be_v smite_v with_o the_o sword_n though_o the_o execution_n of_o many_o of_o they_o be_v defer_v upon_o daniel_n offer_n and_o undertake_v to_o expound_v the_o dream_n v._n 24._o geneu._n like_v as_o under_o ahab_n and_o jehu_n baal_n priest_n be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o galerius_n maximinus_n be_v overcome_v of_o licinius_n he_o cause_v the_o idol_n priest_n to_o be_v slay_v as_o impostor_n and_o deceiver_n bull_v quest._n 17._o what_o office_n arioch_n have_v to_o who_o daniel_n make_v this_o motion_n vers_fw-la 14._o 1._o r._n shelemo_n take_v the_o word_n tabacaia_v for_o carnifice_n executioner_n he_o think_v that_o arioch_n be_v set_v over_o these_o which_o have_v the_o charge_n to_o put_v other_o to_o death_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o have_v a_o better_a office_n for_o he_o be_v a_o chief_a man_n about_o the_o king_n and_o bring_v daniel_n in_o to_o the_o king_n vers_fw-la 25._o 2._o the_o septuag_n interpret_v here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o chief_a cook_n but_o it_o appertain_v not_o to_o that_o office_n to_o see_v execution_n do_v upon_o man_n 3._o some_o call_v he_o the_o king_n chief_a steward_n genevens_n but_o neither_o be_v it_o incident_a to_o that_o office_n to_o oversee_v the_o punishment_n of_o offender_n 4._o the_o vulgar_a latin_a interprete_v praefectum_fw-la militiae_fw-la captain_n of_o his_o army_n but_o here_o be_v no_o army_n levy_v or_o battle_n proclaim_v 5._o therefore_o rab_n tabachim_n be_v better_a interpret_v praefectus_fw-la satellitum_fw-la the_o captain_n of_o the_o guard_n or_o high_a marshal_n such_o a_o one_o be_v potiphar_n unto_o pharaoh_n gen._n 37._o 36._o who_o have_v the_o chief_a charge_n of_o the_o king_n prisoner_n gen._n 40._o 3._o polan_n jun._n quest._n 18._o vers_fw-la 15._o how_o daniel_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o king_n decree_n against_o the_o soothsayer_n 1._o some_o think_v that_o daniel_n of_o purpose_n do_v forbear_v to_o go_v with_o the_o rest_n least_o he_o may_v seem_v ambitious_o to_o have_v seek_v honour_n and_o reward_n 8._o which_o be_v promise_v to_o they_o which_o shall_v interpret_v the_o king_n dream_n gloss_n ordinar_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o reward_n promise_v till_o they_o appear_v before_o the_o king_n and_o if_o daniel_n have_v receive_v any_o message_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n he_o may_v easy_o have_v guess_v at_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o hard_a sentence_n 2._o but_o it_o be_v like_a that_o the_o chaldean_n conceal_v this_o matter_n from_o daniel_n whereof_o two_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v it_o proceed_v ex_fw-la inuidia_fw-la &_o cupiditate_fw-la from_o their_o envy_n and_o covetousness_n lyran._n their_o envy_n in_o that_o they_o think_v great_a scorn_n that_o so_o young_a a_o man_n as_o daniel_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o counsel_n with_o the_o grave_a sage_a counsellor_n who_o be_v in_o great_a estimation_n with_o the_o king_n for_o their_o long_a experience_n jun._n their_o covetousness_n also_o herein_o appear_v that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o reward_n only_o to_o themselves_o soli_fw-la ingressi_fw-la tanquam_fw-la soli_fw-la praemia_fw-la percepturi_fw-la they_o only_o go_v in_o that_o they_o only_o may_v receive_v the_o reward_n bull_v they_o be_v also_o ambitious_a they_o be_v loath_a that_o any_o stranger_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o king_n presence_n or_o any_o have_v in_o reputation_n but_o themselves_o jun._n annot_n 3._o but_o special_o this_o fall_v out_o by_o god_n providence_n that_o daniel_n be_v seek_v for_o unto_o death_n may_v by_o this_o mean_n be_v bring_v forth_o and_o the_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n in_o he_o be_v make_v manifest_a and_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v his_o life_n shall_v be_v preserve_v polan_n 4._o and_o herein_o appear_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o chaldean_n qui_fw-la in_o periculo_fw-la voluerunt_fw-la habere_fw-la consortes_fw-la which_o will_v have_v daniel_n and_o his_o fellow_n partaker_n of_o their_o punishment_n who_o they_o refuse_v to_o have_v any_o part_n before_o in_o the_o reward_n pelican_n quest._n 19_o vers_fw-la 19_o how_o this_o secret_n be_v reveal_v unto_o daniel_n in_o the_o night_n 1._o some_o think_v that_o this_o vision_n be_v show_v unto_o daniel_n by_o a_o angel_n because_o such_o revelation_n be_v usual_o make_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n pintus_fw-la ex_fw-la dyonis_n but_o daniel_n acknowledge_v in_o his_o thanksgiving_n that_o he_o receive_v this_o revelation_n only_o from_o god_n and_o to_o he_o only_o he_o give_v the_o praise_n 2._o and_o for_o the_o manner_n hierome_n think_v that_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o he_o by_o dream_n in_o the_o night_n so_o also_o gloss_n ordin_fw-fr somnium_fw-la regis_fw-la discit_fw-la svo_fw-la insomnio_fw-la he_o learn_v the_o king_n dream_n by_o his_o dream_n so_o also_o osian_a lyran._n give_v this_o reason_n because_o the_o night_n be_v fit_a for_o such_o revelation_n the_o sense_n be_v quiet_a ab_fw-la exterioribus_fw-la tumultibus_fw-la from_o all_o outward_a tumult_n and_o that_o the_o vision_n in_o the_o night_n be_v by_o dream_n he_o will_v prove_v by_o that_o place_n job._n 33._o 15._o god_n speak_v etc._n etc._n in_o dream_n and_o vision_n of_o the_o night_n when_o sleep_n fall_v upon_o man_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o place_n prove_v not_o that_o every_o night_n vision_n be_v by_o dream_n but_o that_o in_o the_o night_n when_o sleep_n fall_v upon_o man_n the_o lord_n sometime_o speak_v unto_o they_o by_o dream_n sometime_o by_o vision_n 3._o albertus_n magnus_fw-la as_o pintus_fw-la report_v his_o opinion_n think_v that_o daniel_n have_v this_o revelation_n vigilia_fw-la noctis_fw-la as_o he_o watch_v in_o the_o night_n and_o this_o be_v the_o more_o probable_a opinion_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v call_v a_o vision_n now_o vision_n and_o dream_n be_v distinguish_v as_o the_o two_o usual_a way_n whereby_o the_o lord_n reveal_v himself_o unto_o his_o prophet_n numb_a 12._o 6._o polan_n 2._o daniel_n and_o his_o three_o fellow_n be_v occupy_v in_o prayer_n while_o other_o sleep_v pellic._n and_o it_o seem_v as_o they_o pray_v that_o this_o vision_n
interpretation_n thereof_o 8._o the_o king_n answer_v and_o say_v i_o know_v certain_o that_o he_o will_v gain_v time_n redeem_v or_o buy_v time_n chald._n because_o you_o see_v the_o thing_n be_v go_v from_o i_o 9_o but_o if_o you_o will_v not_o declare_v i_o the_o dream_n there_o be_v but_o one_o judgement_n sentence_n l._n v._o i._n or_o law_n a._n for_o you_o for_o you_o have_v prepare_v lie_v and_o corrupt_a word_n to_o speak_v before_o i_o till_o the_o time_n be_v change_v g._n i._o the_o time_n be_v pass_v l._n till_o there_o be_v a_o other_o state_n of_o thing_n v._n therefore_o tell_v i_o the_o dream_n that_o i_o may_v know_v if_o you_o can_v declare_v the_o interpretation_n thereof_o 10._o the_o chaldean_n answer_v before_o the_o king_n and_o say_v chal._n and_o say_v there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n upon_o the_o earth_n chal._n upon_o the_o dry_a ground_n which_o can_v declare_v the_o king_n matter_n therefore_o not_o any_o king_n nor_o prince_n or_o ruler_n mighty_a chald._n ever_o ask_v such_o a_o question_n such_o a_o say_n c._o of_o any_o magician_n astrologian_n or_o chaldean_a 11._o and_o the_o matter_n the_o say_v c._o which_o the_o king_n require_v be_v precious_a i._o rare_a g._n of_o great_a weight_n l._n a._n and_o there_o be_v not_o any_o other_o to_o be_v find_v l._n which_o can_v declare_v it_o before_o the_o king_n except_o the_o god_n who_o dwelling_n be_v not_o with_o flesh_n with_o man_n l._n with_o mortal_a man_n v._o 12._o for_o this_o cause_n the_o king_n be_v angry_a and_o in_o a_o great_a fury_n and_o give_v charge_n to_o destroy_v all_o the_o wiseman_n of_o babel_n 13._o so_o the_o sentence_n be_v give_v and_o the_o wiseman_n be_v slay_v and_o they_o seek_v daniel_n and_o his_o fellow_n to_o be_v slay_v 14._o then_o daniel_n inquire_v of_o the_o counsel_n and_o decree_n l._n po._n return_v the_o counsel_n and_o decree_n c._n not_o answer_v with_o counsel_n g._n or_o intercede_v v._o of_o arioch_n the_o captain_n of_o the_o guard_n i._o or_o chief_a marshal_n or_o executioner_n v._o the_o captain_n of_o his_o army_n l._n to_o the_o king_n which_o be_v go_v forth_o to_o slay_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o babel_n 15._o yea_o he_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o arioch_n the_o king_n captain_n why_o be_v the_o sentence_n so_o hasty_a from_o the_o king_n then_o arioch_n make_v know_v declare_v g._n the_o thing_n the_o word_n c._o to_o daniel_n 16._o so_o daniel_n go_v in_o and_o desire_v of_o the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o time_n leisure_n g._n and_o he_o will_v declare_v the_o interpretation_n to_o the_o king_n 17._o then_o daniel_n go_v to_o his_o house_n and_o make_v know_v the_o matter_n the_o word_n c._o to_o hananiah_n chananiah_n c._o mishael_n and_o hazariah_n his_o companion_n 18._o and_o that_o they_o shall_v beseech_v mercy_n from_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n in_o this_o secret_a sacrament_n l._n that_o daniel_n with_o his_o fellow_n may_v not_o perish_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o wiseman_n of_o babel_n 19_o then_o be_v the_o secret_a reucale_v to_o daniel_n in_o a_o vision_n by_o night_n therefore_o daniel_n bless_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 20._o and_o daniel_n answer_v and_o say_v the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v bless_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o for_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n be_v he_o 21._o and_o he_o change_v time_n and_o season_n moderate_v v._o he_o take_v away_o king_n not_o kingdom_n l._n and_o establish_v king_n set_v up_o g._n creat_v v._o he_o give_v wisdom_n to_o the_o wise_a and_o knowledge_n to_o man_n of_o understanding_n to_o they_o which_o know_v understanding_n c._o 22._o he_o discover_v the_o deep_a and_o secret_a thing_n he_o know_v what_o be_v in_o the_o darkness_n and_o the_o light_n dwell_v with_o he_o 23._o i_o thank_v thou_o and_o praise_v thou_o o_o thou_o god_n of_o my_o father_n that_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n and_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o i_o make_v i_o to_o know_v that_o which_o we_o desire_v of_o thou_o for_o thou_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o the_o king_n matter_n word_n c._o 24._o wherefore_o daniel_n go_v unto_o arioch_n who_o the_o king_n have_v appoint_v to_o destroy_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o babel_n he_o go_v and_o say_v thus_o unto_o he_o destroy_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o babel_n bring_v i_o in_o before_o the_o king_n and_o i_o will_v declare_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o interpretation_n 25._o then_o arioch_n in_o haste_n bring_v in_o daniel_n before_o the_o king_n and_o say_v thus_o unto_o he_o i_o have_v find_v a_o man_n of_o the_o child_n of_o ludah_fw-mi take_v captive_n child_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o judah_n c._o that_o will_v make_v know_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o interpretation_n 26._o then_o answer_v the_o king_n and_o say_v unto_o daniel_n who_o name_n be_v beltshatzar_n balthasar_n l._n beltsazar_n v._o belteshazzar_n g._n be_v thou_o able_a to_o make_v know_v unto_o i_o the_o dream_n which_o i_o have_v see_v and_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o 27._o daniel_n answer_v before_o the_o king_n l._n a._n to_o the_o king_n i._o v._n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n b._n g._n and_o say_v the_o secret_a which_o the_o king_n have_v demand_v can_v neither_o the_o wiseman_n astrologian_n magician_n l._n wizard_n v._o soothsayer_n b._n magician_n i._n v._o enchanter_n g._n wise_a man_n b._n coniecturer_n l._n soothsayer_n such_o as_o give_v conjecture_v by_o the_o entrails_n of_o beast_n aruspices_fw-la i._o l._n reader_n of_o destiny_n v._o b._n declare_v unto_o the_o king_n 28._o but_o there_o be_v a_o god_n in_o heaven_n the_o revealer_n of_o secret_n who_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o king_n nabuchadnezzar_n what_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o day_n follow_v i._n v._o in_o the_o latter_a day_n l._n g._n b._n a._n p._n but_o many_o of_o these_o thing_n fall_v out_o not_o long_o after_o nebuchadnezzars_n time_n in_o the_o consequence_n or_o follow_v of_o day_n c._o thy_o dream_n and_o the_o vision_n of_o thy_o head_n upon_o thy_o bed_n be_v this_o 29._o o_o king_n thought_n come_v ascend_v c._o to_o thou_o upon_o thy_o bed_n what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v hereafter_o and_o he_o which_o reveal_v secret_n tell_v thou_o what_o shall_v come_v 30._o as_o for_o i_o not_o for_o any_o wisdom_n which_o be_v in_o i_o more_o than_o in_o any_o live_n be_v this_o secret_a reveal_v unto_o i_o but_o for_o this_o that_o they_o may_v not_o that_o i_o may_v b._n or_o that_o it_o may_v l._n that_o some_z might_n v._o for_o their_o cause_n which_o might_n i._o make_v know_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o interpretation_n and_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v the_o thought_n of_o thy_o heart_n 31._o o_o king_n thou_o see_v and_o behold_v a_o great_a image_n this_o large_a image_n who_o glory_n and_o the_o glory_n thereof_o c._o be_v excellent_a stand_v before_o thou_o and_o the_o form_n thereof_o be_v terrible_a 32._o this_o image_n head_n be_v of_o fine_a good_a c._n gold_n the_o breast_n thereof_o and_o the_o arm_n thereof_o of_o silver_n his_o belly_n and_o his_o side_n i._o thigh_n caeter_fw-la of_o brass_n 33._o his_o leg_n of_o iron_n his_o foot_n be_v part_v some_o of_o they_o c._o of_o iron_n part_n of_o clay_n 34._o thou_o behelde_v till_o a_o stone_n be_v cut_v out_o which_o be_v not_o with_o hand_n that_o be_v cut_v out_o without_o hand_n caeter_fw-la but_o then_o the_o relative_a which_o shall_v be_v omit_v which_o smite_v the_o image_n upon_o his_o foot_n which_o be_v of_o iron_n and_o clay_n and_o break_v they_o in_o piece_n 35._o then_o be_v the_o iron_n the_o clay_n the_o brass_n the_o silver_n and_o the_o gold_n break_v altogether_o and_o become_v like_o the_o chaff_n of_o the_o summer_n float_v where_o the_o wheat_n be_v thresh_v and_o the_o wind_n carry_v they_o away_o that_o not_o any_o place_n be_v find_v for_o they_o and_o the_o stone_n that_o smite_v the_o image_n become_v a_o great_a mountain_n and_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n 36._o this_o be_v the_o dream_n and_o we_o will_v declare_v the_o interpretation_n thereof_o before_o the_o king_n 37._o o_o king_n thou_o be_v a_o king_n of_o king_n for_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v thou_o a_o kingdom_n power_n and_o strength_n and_o glory_n 38._o and_o in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o child_n of_o man_n dwell_v the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n and_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n have_v he_o give_v into_o thy_o hand_n a._n p._n g._n b._n not_o all_o those_o place_n where_o etc._n etc._n v._o l._n for_o here_o the_o preposition_n in_o be_v omit_v or_o where_o the_o child_n of_o man_n the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n etc._n etc._n dwell_v i._o these_o be_v rather_o say_v to_o be_v give_v as_o jer._n 27._o 6._o
true_a light_n that_o light_v every_o one_o that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n both_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n proceed_v from_o he_o and_o therefore_o as_o basil_n well_o observe_v prima_fw-la vox_fw-la dei_fw-la lucem_fw-la creavit_fw-la the_o first_o voice_n that_o god_n in_o scripture_n be_v find_v to_o have_v utter_v create_v the_o light_n for_o like_a as_o a_o most_o goodly_a picture_n if_o it_o be_v lay_v ina_fw-la dark_n cave_n make_v no_o show_n at_o all_o so_o the_o goodly_a workmanship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creature_n have_v be_v obscure_v if_o god_n have_v not_o make_v light_a to_o cause_v the_o beauty_n of_o it_o to_o appear_v pint._n 2._o god_n also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o light_n 1._o joh._n 1._o 7._o because_o he_o can_v endure_v no_o falsehood_n hypocrisy_n or_o untruth_n 3._o the_o lord_n also_o be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o light_n that_o none_o can_v attain_v unto_o 1._o timoth._n 6._o 16._o because_o we_o through_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o understanding_n and_o blindness_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o by_o the_o illumination_n of_o his_o grace_n do_v make_v a_o way_n for_o we_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o 4._o now_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v psal_n 97._o 2._o that_o cloud_n and_o darkness_n be_v round_o about_o he_o and_o 1._o king_n 8._o 12._o god_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o the_o cloud_n the_o scripture_n by_o this_o metaphor_n show_v only_o deum_fw-la esse_fw-la inaccessum_fw-la that_o god_n be_v inaccessible_a unto_o we_o not_o what_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o the_o cloud_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n presence_n as_o he_o say_v to_o moses_n levit._n 16._o 2._o i_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n polan_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o appear_v in_o mount_n sinai_n cover_v all_o the_o mountain_n with_o a_o thick_a cloud_n to_o show_v that_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n quest._n 25._o vers_fw-la 24._o whether_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o stay_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o king_n sentence_n upon_o the_o wiseman_n vers._n 24._o he_o say_v unto_o he_o destroy_v not_o the_o wiseman_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o if_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n have_v be_v execute_v upon_o these_o superstitious_a chaldean_n the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v be_v deliver_v from_o pestilent_a enemy_n and_o they_o beside_o have_v just_o deserve_v to_o die_v because_o of_o their_o fraud_n and_o imposture_n it_o may_v seem_v that_o daniel_n may_v have_v do_v much_o better_a to_o have_v suffer_v the_o sentence_n to_o proceed_v against_o they_o 1._o for_o answer_v hereunto_o osiander_n think_v that_o there_o may_v be_v some_o innocent_a man_n among_o they_o which_o err_v only_o of_o simplicity_n and_o do_v not_o malicious_o by_o their_o wicked_a art_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o daniel_n will_v have_v they_o spare_v but_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o text_n that_o daniel_n will_v general_o have_v all_o the_o wiseman_n spare_v which_o yet_o remain_v for_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v slay_v already_o 2._o calvin_n think_v the_o reason_n be_v quia_fw-la nondum_fw-la maturuerat_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la iniquitas_fw-la because_o yet_o their_o iniquity_n be_v not_o come_v to_o the_o full_a they_o be_v reserve_v to_o a_o further_a punishment_n 3._o bullinger_n think_v they_o be_v spare_v that_o by_o daniel_n mean_v in_o vera_fw-la sapientia_fw-la proficerent_fw-la they_o may_v come_v to_o repentance_n and_o profit_n in_o true_a wisdom_n these_o end_n indeed_o the_o lord_n may_v propound_v to_o himself_o in_o spare_v these_o hypocrite_n but_o the_o question_n be_v what_o apparent_a reason_n move_v daniel_n to_o entreat_v for_o they_o 4._o bullinger_n again_o think_v that_o god_n stir_v up_o daniel_n to_o do_v it_o because_o he_o will_v have_v his_o judgement_n temper_v with_o clemency_n some_o of_o they_o be_v put_v to_o the_o sword_n the_o rest_n the_o lord_n will_v have_v spare_v that_o his_o mercy_n and_o clemency_n may_v appear_v in_o judgement_n this_o be_v admit_v to_o have_v be_v the_o secret_a cause_n before_o god_n of_o this_o work_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o show_v what_o stir_v up_o daniel_n to_o do_v it_o 5._o these_o two_o reason_n then_o remain_v which_o persuade_v daniel_n 1._o his_o charity_n and_o love_n even_o towards_o his_o enemy_n non_fw-la vult_fw-la eos_fw-la perire_fw-la propter_fw-la quos_fw-la erat_fw-la ipse_fw-la periturus_fw-la he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o perish_v for_o who_o cause_n he_o be_v like_a to_o have_v perish_v hierome_n lyran._n wherein_o he_o imitate_v the_o clemency_n of_o christ_n who_o pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n pelican_n he_o may_v by_o this_o mean_n win_v they_o or_o else_o heap_v coal_n upon_o their_o head_n and_o make_v they_o less_o excusable_a 2._o daniel_n in_o equity_n consider_v causam_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la iustam_fw-la that_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o just_a which_o move_v nabuchadnezzar_n to_o command_v they_o to_o be_v kill_v but_o he_o do_v it_o in_o haste_n and_o rage_n and_o therefore_o daniel_n not_o so_o much_o look_v unto_o their_o person_n as_o to_o their_o cause_n desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v spare_v polan_n quest._n 26._o vers_fw-la 25._o whether_o arioch_n lie_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o say_n i_o have_v find_v a_o man_n etc._n etc._n 1._o some_o think_v that_o arioch_n which_o know_v that_o daniel_n and_o his_o companion_n be_v wise_a than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chaldean_n have_v indeed_o seek_v they_o out_o ad_fw-la solutionem_fw-la faciendam_fw-la to_o give_v solution_n of_o the_o king_n demand_n hugo_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o the_o text_n ver_fw-la 13._o that_o they_o be_v no_o otherways_o seek_v for_o but_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n 2._o most_o do_v think_v that_o arioch_n here_o play_v the_o cunning_a courtier_n qui_fw-la sibi_fw-la usurpant_fw-la aliorum_fw-la inuenta_fw-la which_o do_v take_v unto_o themselves_o that_o which_o other_o man_n find_v out_o bullinger_n for_o he_o have_v not_o seek_v for_o daniel_n ultro_fw-la se_fw-la obtulerat_fw-la he_o have_v offer_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o actord_a lyran._n dei_fw-la gratiam_fw-la ad_fw-la svam_fw-la refert_fw-la diligentiam_fw-la the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n he_o ascribe_v to_o his_o own_o diligence_n pelican_n fallebat_fw-la regem_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o deceive_v the_o king_n herein_o as_o though_o he_o have_v find_v out_o daniel_n whereas_o he_o offer_v himself_o pintus_fw-la but_o he_o can_v not_o without_o the_o king_n great_a offence_n and_o indignation_n have_v tell_v such_o a_o palpable_a lie_n see_v that_o daniel_n have_v before_o present_v himself_o to_o the_o king_n ver_fw-la 16._o and_o desire_v some_o time_n to_o show_v the_o king_n his_o dream_n polan_n 3._o therefore_o to_o meet_v with_o this_o doubt_n caluine_n think_v that_o daniel_n have_v not_o conference_n before_o immediate_o with_o the_o king_n but_o arioch_n fuisse_fw-la internuntium_fw-la that_o arioch_n be_v the_o messenger_n between_o they_o when_o the_o king_n grant_v he_o some_o time_n but_o the_o text_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n vers_n 16._o that_o daniel_n himself_o go_v and_o desire_v the_o king_n for_o arioch_n dare_v not_o have_v move_v any_o such_o thing_n have_v straight_o charge_v give_v he_o to_o put_v all_o the_o wiseman_n to_o death_n forthwith_o 4._o va●ablus_n to_o help_v the_o matter_n read_v in_o the_o passive_a he_o say_v quod_fw-la repertus_fw-la est_fw-la vir_fw-la that_o a_o man_n be_v find_v out_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o word_n in_o the_o chalde_n hashcacath_n be_v in_o the_o active_a i_o have_v find_v and_o yet_o it_o have_v not_o be_v true_a in_o the_o other_o sense_n for_o daniel_n be_v not_o find_v but_o offer_v and_o he_o be_v not_o now_o first_o know_v or_o find_v but_o he_o have_v make_v himself_o know_v to_o the_o king_n before_o 5._o polanus_fw-la make_v this_o therefore_o to_o be_v his_o meaning_n that_o in_o this_o speech_n he_o do_v gratulari_fw-la regi_fw-la etc._n etc._n congratulate_v with_o the_o king_n and_o ascribe_v as_o unto_o his_o fortune_n that_o such_o a_o thing_n have_v happen_v but_o the_o phrase_n itself_o i_o have_v find_v show_v that_o he_o do_v attribute_n somewhat_o in_o this_o matter_n unto_o himself_o 6._o therefore_o i_o think_v with_o junius_n that_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n i_o have_v find_v a_o man_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o incidi_fw-la in_o hominem_fw-la i_o have_v meet_v with_o the_o man_n not_o that_o he_o first_o find_v he_o out_o but_o that_o now_o he_o fall_v upon_o he_o or_o he_o come_v unto_o he_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o king_n so_o be_v the_o word_n use_v 1._o king_n 22._o 20._o where_o ahab_n go_v down_o to_o take_v possession_n of_o noboths_n vineyard_n say_v to_o elias_n
such_o like_a 2._o by_o their_o impotency_n they_o can_v neither_o see_v hear_v nor_o understand_v 4._o he_o give_v not_o glory_n unto_o god_n which_o be_v aggravate_v by_o two_o benefit_n the_o give_v he_o of_o his_o life_n and_o breath_n and_o in_o protect_v he_o in_o who_o hand_n be_v thy_o breath_n and_o all_o thy_o way_n etc._n etc._n 3._o then_o follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o dream_n v_o 25._o to_o 29._o quest._n 26._o of_o daniel_n abrupt_a beginning_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o king_n v_o 17._o keep_v thy_o reward_n to_o thyself_o the_o reason_n why_o daniel_n use_v no_o insinuation_n or_o salutation_n to_o the_o king_n be_v these_o 1._o in_o respect_n of_o his_o age_n and_o gravity_n such_o a_o simple_a and_o plain_a beginning_n become_v he_o for_o he_o be_v 90._o year_n old_a if_o we_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v 20._o when_o he_o first_o go_v into_o captivity_n 2._o it_o best_o beseem_v he_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n be_v a_o prophet_n and_o now_o consult_v with_o concern_v the_o will_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n to_o show_v his_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n gift_n jun._n 3._o hoc_fw-la ips●_fw-la monstravit_fw-la abiectum_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o that_o he_o salute_v he_o not_o as_o a_o king_n give_v he_o his_o title_n he_o therein_o show_v that_o he_o be_v now_o reject_v of_o god_n no_o long_o to_o be_v king_n oecolampad_n 4._o voluit_fw-la asperius_fw-la loqui_fw-la cum_fw-la impir_n &_o desperate_a he_o will_v speak_v the_o more_o rough_o with_o a_o wicked_a and_o desperate_a man_n of_o who_o there_o be_v small_a hope_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v rip_v up_o his_o sin_n and_o search_v it_o to_o the_o depth_n calvin_n quest._n 27._o why_o daniel_n reject_v the_o king_n reward_n 1._o that_o be_v not_o only_o the_o reason_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n because_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v make_v merchandise_n of_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n as_o polan_n and_o to_o fulfil_v that_o say_n in_o the_o gospel_n you_o have_v free_o receive_v free_o give_v lyran._n pelican_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v not_o by_o this_o reason_n have_v receive_v any_o gift_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n 2._o neither_o be_v this_o the_o cause_n tristia_fw-la nuntiantem_fw-la indecens_fw-la erat_fw-la dona_fw-la aeciper●_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o one_o tell_v hard_a news_n to_o receive_v gift_n gloss_n ordinar_n for_o then_o neither_o shall_v daniel_n have_v receive_v any_o reward_n of_o king_n nabuchadnezzar_n after_o he_o have_v expound_v the_o dream_n of_o theimage_n which_o foreshow_v the_o end_n and_o dissolution_n of_o nebuchadnezzars_n kingdom_n 3._o and_o to_o say_v that_o daniel_n affect_v no_o such_o honour_n because_o he_o be_v now_o old_a be_v a_o insufficient_a reason_n for_o neither_o have_v he_o at_o any_o time_n before_o any_o desire_n to_o those_o place_n but_o only_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o l●rds_n people_n 4._o but_o the_o special_a reason_n be_v these_o two_o noluit_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la impir_n etc._n etc._n he_o will_v not_o receive_v any_o gift_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n osiand_n as_o abraham_n refuse_v to_o take_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n and_o the_o prophet_n elisha_n of_o naaman_n who_o be_v a_o stranger_n as_o also_o tempus_fw-la subiectionis_fw-la mox_fw-la finiendum_fw-la erat_fw-la the_o time_n of_o subjection_n unto_o this_o king_n and_o of_o his_o government_n be_v at_o a_o end_n calvin_n and_o therefore_o he_o refuse_v these_o honour_n at_o his_o hand_n who_o be_v as_o no_o king_n but_o reject_v of_o god_n quest._n 28._o why_o daniel_n receive_v the_o like_a reward_n from_o nabuchadnezzar_n and_o refuse_v they_o from_o balthasar_n 1._o the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n be_v because_o daniel_n know_v that_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o kingdom_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give●_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o son_n and_o therefore_o he_o make_v no_o refusal_n of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o because_o thereby_o he_o may_v stand_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o great_a stead_n but_o the_o case_n be_v now_o otherwise_o for_o he_o know_v that_o balthazar_n be_v kingdom_n be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o these_o honour_n under_o he_o he_o can_v not_o long_o hold_v and_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o chaldean_n be_v at_o a_o end_n he_o can_v not_o thereby_o advantage_n the_o people_n of_o god_n polan_n 2._o because_o also_o their_o be_v great_a obstinacy_n and_o stubbornness_n in_o balthasar_n then_o there_o be_v in_o nabuchadnezzar_n ideo_fw-la oftendit_fw-la se_fw-la minus_fw-la ei_fw-la defer_v quam_fw-la avo_fw-la and_o therefore_o he_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o respect_n and_o honour_v he_o as_o his_o grandfather_n calvin_n quest._n 29._o why_o then_o daniel_n after_o his_o refusal_n accept_v afterward_o of_o these_o reward_n v_o 29._o this_o show_v no_o inconstancy_n at_o all_o in_o daniel_n to_o suffer_v that_o to_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o which_o before_o he_o in_o word_n refuse_v 1._o it_o be_v like_a that_o they_o be_v very_o urgent_a and_o instant_a upon_o he_o to_o accept_v of_o the_o king_n offer_n 2._o chrysostome_n give_v this_o reason_n that_o if_o he_o have_v be_v stiff_o in_o refuse_v still_o it_o will_v have_v be_v think_v quod_fw-la ipse_fw-la de_fw-la responso_fw-la svo_fw-la addubit_fw-la asset_fw-la that_o he_o himself_o have_v doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o answer_n and_o therefore_o to_o take_v away_o that_o suspicion_n he_o upon_o that_o instance_n accept_v of_o the_o reward_n so_o also_o occolampad_n bull_v 3._o an_o other_o reason_n be_v qui_fw-la mundi_fw-la divitias_fw-la contempserat_fw-la ne_fw-la regem_fw-la ipsum_fw-la contemnere_fw-la videretur_fw-la lest_o he_o which_o have_v despise_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v have_v seem_v to_o have_v set_v the_o king_n himself_o at_o naught_o he_o accept_v of_o the_o king_n offer_n pintus_fw-la 4._o if_o he_o have_v still_o obstinate_o refuse_v he_o may_v have_v be_v bring_v in_o suspicionem_fw-la proditionis_fw-la into_o suspicion_n of_o treason_n calvin_n as_o though_o he_o have_v conspire_v with_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n against_o the_o king_n if_o he_o have_v refuse_v balthazar_n be_v reward_n and_o offer_v 5._o signum_fw-la fuisset_fw-la timiditatis_fw-la it_o have_v be_v also_o a_o sign_n of_o fearfulness_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o may_v have_v lie_v hide_v still_o and_o so_o escape_v the_o danger_n be_v call_v to_o no_o public_a place_n he_o therefore_o in_o accept_v of_o these_o honour_n ostendit_fw-la se_fw-la imperterritum_fw-la show_v himself_o without_o fear_n calvin_n quest._n 30._o whether_o in_o these_o word_n he_o put_v to_o death_n who_o he_o will_v v_o 19_o nebuchadnezzars_n tyrannical_a government_n be_v express_v 1._o neither_o be_v this_o a_o description_n of_o nebuchadnezzars_n tyranny_n and_o cruel_a government_n as_o though_o he_o put_v to_o death_n the_o innocent_a and_o spoil_v man_n of_o their_o good_n without_o just_a cause_n or_o equity_n for_o that_o this_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o abuse_n of_o his_o power_n the_o next_o v._n follow_v show_v but_o when_o his_o heart_n be_v puff_v up_o this_o power_n then_o may_v be_v in_o nabuchadnezzar_n and_o his_o heart_n not_o yet_o lift_v up_o 2._o neither_o yet_o do_v i_o think_v with_o bullinger_n that_o it_o be_v like_a that_o nabuchadnezzar_n non_fw-la iniuste_fw-la suum_fw-la administravit_fw-la regnum_fw-la do_v not_o unjust_o administer_v his_o kingdom_n for_o the_o contrary_n appear_v c._n 2._o in_o that_o he_o command_v the_o chaldean_n to_o be_v slay_v without_o cause_n for_o that_o they_o can_v not_o tell_v the_o king_n his_o dream_n which_o he_o have_v forget_v and_o c._n 3._o he_o command_v the_o three_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n for_o refuse_v to_o worship_v the_o idol_n which_o he_o have_v set_v up_o 3._o nor_o yet_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v by_o this_o place_n that_o prince_n have_v authority_n to_o take_v away_o their_o subject_n life_n and_o good_n at_o their_o pleasure_n for_o even_o king_n themselves_o must_v remember_v serationem_fw-la summo_fw-la regi_fw-la reddituros_fw-la that_o they_o also_o shall_v give_v account_n unto_o the_o the_o great_a king_n calvin_n 4._o but_o the_o prophet_n simple_o speak_v de_fw-fr regius_fw-la potestate_fw-la of_o the_o kingly_a power_n calv._n neither_o touch_v the_o abuse_n or_o right_a use_n thereof_o but_o show_v to_o what_o eminent_a authority_n god_n have_v exalt_v he_o that_o he_o may_v exalt_v and_o cast_v down_o who_o he_o list_v to_o show_v that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o this_o great_a honour_n and_o power_n for_o the_o which_o he_o be_v fear_v of_o all_o this_o amplitude_n and_o greatness_n of_o his_o authority_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o two_o effect_n 1._o the_o one_o be_v in_o his_o subject_n they_o fear_v and_o stand_v in_o awe_n
the_o lord_n to_o be_v daniel_n god_n and_o that_o he_o serve_v he_o but_o he_o do_v not_o call_v he_o his_o god_n neither_o do_v darius_n abolish_v the_o worship_n of_o idol_n out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n all_o which_o be_v evident_a argument_n that_o he_o be_v not_o true_o convert_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o daniel_n god_n polan_n quest._n 23._o of_o daniel_n deliverance_n from_o the_o lion_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o daniel_n show_v both_o the_o cause_n efficient_a the_o form_n and_o manner_n and_o end_n of_o this_o his_o deliverance_n 1._o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o this_o his_o deliverance_n be_v god_n god_n have_v send_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n be_v the_o angel_n for_o though_o god_n can_v immediate_o deliver_v he_o without_o the_o ministry_n of_o other_o yet_o it_o please_v he_o to_o use_v his_o angel_n both_o for_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o further_a consolation_n of_o his_o servant_n 2._o the_o form_n and_o manner_n be_v express_v the_o angel_n shut_v the_o lion_n mouth_n that_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hurt_v daniel_n and_o not_o only_o their_o mouth_n be_v shut_v but_o hereby_o be_v signify_v also_o that_o their_o talent_n and_o claw_n be_v stay_v from_o hurt_v he_o and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v not_o hurt_v i_o so_o that_o they_o touch_v he_o neither_o with_o their_o tooth_n claw_n tail_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n jun._n 3._o the_o end_n also_o be_v express_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o innocence_n of_o daniel_n may_v appear_v and_o the_o goodness_n of_o his_o cause_n that_o he_o have_v not_o offend_v against_o the_o king_n but_o have_v show_v himself_o a_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n polan_n quest._n 24._o of_o daniel_n salutation_n to_o the_o king_n o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o 1._o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o salutation_n in_o the_o east_n country_n to_o wish_v long_a life_n unto_o their_o king_n thus_o the_o chaldean_n salute_v nabuchadnezzar_n c._n 2._o 4._o but_o in_o hypocrisy_n wish_v in_o their_o heart_n rather_o that_o such_o a_o tyrant_n may_v perish_v so_o c._n 3._o 4._o they_o which_o accuse_v daniel_n godly_a companion_n and_o brethren_n do_v with_o such_o word_n insinuate_v themselves_o to_o the_o king_n as_o flatterer_n but_o daniel_n do_v wish_v unto_o the_o king_n long_a life_n ex_fw-la animo_fw-la from_o his_o heart_n because_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o subject_n to_o pray_v for_o magistrate_n yea_o he_o wish_v unto_o he_o eternal_a life_n gloss_n he_o than_o utter_v the_o same_o word_n but_o with_o a_o other_o heart_n and_o mind_n then_o the_o ●est_n do_v 2._o he_o may_v have_v expostulate_v with_o the_o king_n because_o by_o his_o authority_n he_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n but_o two_o reason_n may_v move_v daniel_n to_o forbear_v all_o such_o reprehension_n 1._o because_o he_o more_o respect_a god_n glory_n then_o his_o own_o particular_a cause_n satis_fw-la fuit_fw-la eius_fw-la liberatione_n illustratam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la dei_fw-la gloriam_fw-la it_o be_v enough_o that_o god_n glory_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o his_o deliverance_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o rest_n calvin_n 2._o according_a to_o s._n paul_n rule_n infirmum_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la recipe_n etc._n etc._n receive_v he_o that_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n etc._n etc._n so_o daniel_n will_v not_o deal_v sharp_o with_o the_o king_n and_o discourage_v he_o but_o by_o gentle_a mean_n seek_v to_o win_v he_o f●rther_o to_o the_o faith_n quest._n 25._o of_o daniel_n manner_n of_o deliverance_n from_o the_o lion_n that_o it_o be_v divine_a and_o extraordinary_a 1._o there_o be_v diverse_a mean_n whereby_o man_n have_v resist_v the_o rage_n and_o violence_n of_o lion_n 1._o as_o first_o by_o force_n and_o strength_n as_o samson_n kill_v a_o lion_n and_o david_n slay_v a_o lion_n and_o a_o bear_v that_o invade_v his_o flock_n but_o so_o be_v not_o daniel_n deliver_v here_o for_o the_o lion_n may_v have_v tear_v he_o before_o he_o come_v at_o the_o ground_n as_o they_o do_v his_o accuser_n and_o though_o resistance_n may_v be_v make_v against_o one_o lion_n yet_o here_o be_v many_o 2._o some_o have_v conquer_v lion_n by_o cast_v some_o garment_n upon_o their_o head_n 16._o and_o so_o as_o it_o be_v blindfold_v they_o as_o pliny_n write_v how_o a_o getulian_n shepherd_n at_o rome_n under_o claudius_n do_v stay_v the_o rage_n and_o fierceness_n of_o a_o lion_n levi_fw-la iniectu_fw-la oper●o_fw-la capite_fw-la his_o head_n be_v cover_v with_o some_o light_a thing_n cast_v upon_o it_o by_o which_o mean_v lysimachus_n who_o alexander_n cause_v to_o be_v shut_v in_o with_o a_o lion_n may_v more_o easy_o strangle_v he_o 3._o some_o have_v tame_v lion_n by_o use_v they_o gentle_o while_o they_o be_v yet_o young_a and_o but_o whelp_n as_o pliny_n in_o the_o same_o place_n make_v mention_n of_o hanno_n the_o carthaginian_a who_o as_o he_o say_v primus_fw-la hominum_fw-la ausus_fw-la est_fw-la leonem_fw-la manu_fw-la tractare_fw-la the_o fi●st_n of_o any_o dare_v handle_v a_o lion_n with_o his_o hand_n 4._o beside_o lion_n use_n to_o show_v themselves_o kind_a unto_o those_o which_o have_v show_v they_o any_o kindness_n 14._o as_o aulus_n gellius_n report_v out_o of_o appian_n of_o a_o certain_a servant_n call_v androdus_n who_o be_v condemn_v to_o the_o wild_a beast_n and_o be_v spare_v of_o a_o lion_n that_o remember_v some_o former_a kindness_n he_o have_v receive_v and_o this_o he_o be_v a_o eye_n witness_n of_o at_o rome_n 5._o pliny_n also_o write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o lion_n unless_o they_o be_v very_o hungry_a will_v spare_v those_o which_o be_v suppliant_a unto_o they_o &_o mulceri_fw-la alloquio_fw-la and_o that_o they_o be_v make_v gentle_a with_o speech_n as_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o woman_n which_o fall_v down_o in_o the_o wood_n before_o a_o lion_n allege_v se_fw-la indignam_fw-la eius_fw-la gloria_fw-la praedam_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o she_o be_v a_o silly_a weak_a woman_n be_v a_o prey_n unworthy_a so_o noble_a a_o beast_n but_o none_o of_o these_o mean_n do_v daniel_n here_o use_v 6._o neither_o yet_o as_o daniel_n enemy_n object_v do_v they_o spare_v daniel_n because_o they_o be_v full_a before_o as_o they_o say_v a_o lion_n will_v not_o prey_v upon_o a_o man_n unless_o he_o be_v very_o hungry_a josephus_n add_v further_a that_o thereupon_o the_o king_n cause_v flesh_n to_o be_v cast_v before_o the_o lion_n to_o feed_v they_o and_o then_o cast_v daniel_n accuser_n into_o the_o den_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v full_a do_v tear_v they_o before_o they_o come_v at_o the_o ground_n but_o this_o narration_n of_o josephus_n though_o it_o may_v seem_v probable_a be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v receive_v see_v the_o scripture_n have_v it_o not_o 2._o but_o the_o lion_n here_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o any_o such_o ordinary_a mean_n this_o be_v god_n extraordinary_a work_n wherein_o it_o please_v he_o to_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n who_o diverse_o as_o pererius_n coniecture_v might_n stop_v the_o lion_n mouth_n 1._o as_o by_o remove_v the_o lion_n into_o some_o other_o place_n 2._o or_o by_o blind_a their_o eye_n 3._o or_o by_o slake_v their_o hunger_n 4._o or_o by_o change_v their_o inward_a fantasy_n which_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o rage_n when_o they_o apprehend_v that_o as_o enemy_n unto_o they_o which_o they_o devour_v 5._o or_o there_o may_v be_v a_o terror_n and_o fear_n strike_v into_o they_o as_o they_o say_v lion_n natural_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o rumble_a of_o wheel_n the_o crow_n of_o a_o cock_n 32._o and_o burn_a fire_n 6._o but_o augustine_n better_a show_v how_o this_o be_v non_fw-la natura_fw-la in_o leonibus_fw-la mutata_fw-la the_o nature_n of_o these_o lion_n be_v not_o change_v sed_fw-la lenitatem_fw-la quam_fw-la catuli●_n ostendunt_fw-la in_o danielem_fw-la exercebant_fw-la but_o they_o practise_v towards_o daniel_n that_o lenity_n which_o they_o use_v to_o show_v to_o their_o whelp_n etc._n etc._n so_o also_o lyranus_fw-la natura_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la mutata_fw-la sed_fw-la feritas_fw-la prohibita_fw-la their_o nature_n be_v not_o change_v but_o their_o rage_n be_v prohibit_v and_o stay_v as_o appear_v afterward_o in_o that_o they_o return_v to_o their_o kind_n in_o fall_v upon_o the_o accuser_n of_o daniel_n and_o break_v all_o their_o bone_n in_o piece_n ere_o they_o come_v at_o the_o ground_n v_o 24._o as_o god_n by_o his_o power_n stay_v the_o sword_n of_o arioch_n that_o seek_v daniel_n to_o slay_v he_o cap._n 2._o 13._o and_o keep_v the_o fire_n that_o it_o hurt_v not_o his_o three_o faithful_a servant_n c._n 3._o so_o here_o he_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o these_o lion_n against_o daniel_n polan_n quest._n 26._o why_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o always_o send_v his_o child_n temporal_a deliverance_n 1._o it_o
world_n can_v not_o bear_v two_o king_n oecolamp_n 4._o he_o be_v say_v also_o to_o cast_v he_o down_o to_o the_o ground_n and_o stamp_n upon_o he_o that_o be_v alexander_n make_v none_o account_v of_o the_o persian_a glory_n and_o riches_n who_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o his_o concubine_n cause_v the_o most_o goodly_a palace_n in_o the_o world_n at_o persepolis_n to_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n calvin_n quest._n 16._o v._n 8._o of_o the_o break_n of_o this_o great_a horn_n and_o of_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n three_o thing_n be_v worthy_a of_o observation_n in_o alexander_n death_n 1._o the_o time_n 2._o the_o cause_n 3._o the_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n 1._o when_o alexander_n be_v at_o the_o great_a and_o be_v return_v from_o the_o conquest_n of_o the_o indian_n as_o of_o king_n porus_n and_o ambira_n and_o purpose_v to_o pass_v over_o into_o greece_n and_o into_o the_o west_n part_n he_o die_v in_o the_o way_n at_o babylon_n where_o ambassador_n from_o all_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n expect_v he_o from_o carthage_n and_o africa_n spain_n france_n sicilia_n sardinia_n 2._o the_o cause_n of_o this_o sudden_a judgement_n which_o befall_v he_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o great_a vice_n which_o he_o fall_v into_o in_o the_o last_o three_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n have_v in_o the_o former_a 8._o year_n show_v himself_o a_o example_n of_o a_o good_a prince_n the●e_n four_o great_a sin_n he_o be_v touch_v withal_o cruelty_n he_o kill_v diverse_a of_o his_o friend_n in_o his_o drunkenness_n which_o be_v another_o vice_n then_o he_o be_v give_v unto_o lust_n and_o wantonness_n his_o pride_n also_o be_v such_o that_o he_o will_v be_v worship_v as_o a_o god_n and_o make_v himself_o juppiter_n ammon_n son_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o command_v calisthenes_n to_o be_v kill_v because_o he_o refuse_v to_o worship_v he_o for_o these_o his_o great_a enormity_n the_o divine_a justice_n overtake_v he_o and_o judge_v he_o 3._o the_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n some_o think_v be_v by_o poison_n but_o the_o most_o agree_v that_o he_o die_v of_o a_o surfeit_n he_o feast_v at_o a_o physician_n house_n a_o thessalian_a one_o of_o his_o friend_n and_o continue_v all_o the_o next_o day_n quaff_v and_o drink_v unto_o midnight_n and_o through_o this_o distemperature_n he_o fall_v into_o a_o burn_a fever_n and_o after_o few_o day_n die_v at_o babylon_n and_o have_v no_o time_n to_o return_v into_o his_o own_o country_n thus_o write_v of_o he_o justinus_n arrianus_n curtius_n plutarch_n quest._n 17._o of_o the_o four_o horn_n which_o come_v up_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o this_o great_a horn_n 1._o these_o four_o horn_n be_v four_o kingdom_n into_o the_o which_o the_o monarchy_n of_o alexander_n be_v divide_v in_o the_o east_n seleucus_n nicanor_n obtain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o babylon_n and_o syria_n in_o the_o west_n cassander_n and_o antipater_n the_o kingdom_n of_o macedonia_n in_o the_o north_n antigonus_n hold_v asia_n minor_a in_o the_o south_n ptolemy_n obtain_v egypt_n 2._o the_o rabbin_n do_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o what_o these_o four_o horn_n shall_v be_v some_o of_o they_o as_o r._n saadiah_n make_v these_o the_o four_o horn_n one_o romanus_n at_o rome_n the_o second_o alexander_n in_o alexandria_n the_o three_o arideus_n in_o achaia_n the_o four_o antiochus_n in_o antiochia_n ab._n ezra_n think_v they_o be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n of_o rome_n egypt_n the_o land_n of_o israel_n persia_n but_o both_o these_o opinion_n be_v evident_o convince_v by_o the_o text_n for_o the_o angel_n afterward_o interprete_v these_o four_o horn_n to_o be_v four_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v stand_v up_o of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o grecian_n v._n 22._o 3._o pererius_n also_o be_v deceive_v who_o appoint_v but_o three_o successor_n to_o alexander_n ptolemy_n in_o egypt_n seleucus_n in_o syria_n and_o antigonus_n in_o macedonia_n whereas_o he_o succeed_v in_o asia_n and_o cassander_n after_o antipater_n in_o macedonia_n quest._n 18._o when_o these_o four_o kingdom_n do_v arise_v after_o the_o great_a horn_n be_v break_v 1._o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o macchabee_n affirm_v that_o alexander_n be_v sick_a part_v his_o kingdom_n among_o his_o servant_n while_o he_o be_v yet_o alive_a 1._o macchab._n 1._o 7._o but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o all_o other_o historiographer_n justinus_n diodorus_n curtius_n arrianus_n orosius_n josephus_n who_o all_o affirm_v that_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o long_a war_n among_o alexander_n captain_n after_o his_o death_n because_o he_o have_v appoint_v none_o to_o succeed_v he_o 2._o pererius_n to_o justify_v the_o apocryphal_a story_n of_o the_o macchabee_n thus_o help_v the_o matter_n that_o alexander_n be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n when_o he_o can_v not_o speak_v do_v resign_v his_o ring_n unto_o perdiccas_n to_o who_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o captain_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o aristonus_n do_v yield_v the_o chief_a dominion_n and_o so_o in_o that_o by_o his_o authority_n the_o four_o kingdom_n be_v divide_v to_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v in_o effect_n do_v by_o alexander_n who_o have_v resign_v the_o kingdom_n unto_o perdiccas_n while_o he_o live_v but_o this_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o true_a history_n for_o after_o alexander_n death_n not_o perdiccas_n but_o arideus_n the_o brother_n of_o alexander_n succeed_v and_o perdiccas_n be_v but_o viceroy_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o peaceable_a division_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o after_o much_o contention_n and_o bloody_a war_n wherein_o 15._o of_o alexander_n captain_n be_v slay_v polan_n 3._o some_o think_v that_o present_o after_o alexander_n death_n the_o captain_n make_v this_o distribution_n among_o themselves_o and_o divide_v the_o kingdom_n into_o four_o part_n gloss_n ordinar_n but_o that_o be_v not_o so_o for_o after_o alexander_n death_n philippus_n arideus_n succeed_v and_o perdiccas_n be_v protector_n or_o viceroy_n until_o roxane_n alexander_n wife_n have_v bring_v forth_o alexander_n his_o son_n and_o then_o philistio_n be_v protector_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o arideus_n be_v kill_v by_o olympias_n alexander_n mother_n and_o alexander_n his_o son_n with_o roxane_n his_o mother_n and_o hercules_n a_o other_o son_n of_o alexander_n with_o barsan●_n his_o mother_n be_v kill_v by_o cassander_n so_o immediate_o after_o alexander_n death_n this_o division_n can_v not_o be_v make_v 4._o wherefore_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o a_o long_a time_n after_o alexander_n death_n there_o be_v contention_n among_o alexander_n captain_n for_o the_o kingdom_n orosius_n say_v 14._o year_n and_o then_o these_o four_o captain_n prevail_v divide_v the_o kingdom_n among_o they_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o former_a question_n and_o as_o eusebius_n write_v the_o kingdom_n of_o syria_n begin_v the_o 11._o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n quest._n 19_o who_o be_v this_o little_a horn_n v_o 9_o 1._o this_o little_a horn_n be_v antiochus_n epiphanes_n that_o be_v noble_a or_o famous_a antiochus_n or_o rather_o as_o polybius_n call_v he_o epimanes_n the_o furious_a or_o mad_a antiochus_n he_o come_v out_o of_o one_o of_o the_o four_o horn_n namely_o of_o seleucus_n nicanor_n be_v the_o eight_o of_o that_o race_n which_o be_v thus_o reckon_v seleucus_n nicanor_n antiochus_n soter_n antiochus_n theos_n seleucus_n callinicus_n seleucus_n ceraunus_n antiochus_n magnus_n seleucus_n philopator_n and_o then_o succeed_v antiochus_n epiphanes_n brother_n to_o the_o say_v seleucus_n and_o young_a son_n to_o antiochus_n the_o great_a 2._o hierome_n then_o be_v here_o deceive_v who_o make_v this_o antiochus_n the_o son_n of_o seleucus_n philopator_n be_v indeed_o his_o brother_n 3._o he_o be_v call_v a_o little_a horn_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o other_o kingdom_n than_o who_o he_o be_v mighty_a but_o in_o these_o respect_n 1._o because_o he_o have_v no_o title_n to_o the_o kingdom_n at_o the_o first_o be_v the_o young_a brother_n and_o seleucus_n his_o elder_a brother_n have_v also_o a_o issue_n male_a demetrius_n polan_n 2._o he_o be_v a_o long_a time_n a_o hostage_n at_o rome_n and_o live_v as_o a_o private_a man_n perer._n 3._o he_o be_v of_o a_o servile_a and_o flatter_a nature_n and_o have_v no_o princely_a quality_n and_o condition_n in_o he_o quest._n 20._o of_o the_o outrage_n commit_v by_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n signify_v by_o this_o little_a horn_n three_o effect_n be_v describe_v 1._o his_o attempt_n against_o other_o nation_n 2._o his_o violence_n against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n 3._o his_o blasphemy_n and_o profaneness_n against_o god_n himself_o 1._o he_o attempt_v much_o against_o the_o south_n namely_o against_o egypt_n upon_o this_o occasion_n ptolomeus_n epiphanes_n marry_v cleopatra_n daughter_n unto_o antiochus_n the_o great_a sister_n unto_o this_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n by_o who_o he_o have_v ptolemy_n philometor_n who_o be_v a_o child_n antiochus_n take_v upon_o
gift_n be_v especial_o call_v and_o send_v to_o that_o end_n to_o prophesy_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n only_o the_o jew_n hold_v neither_o david_n nor_o daniel_n to_o be_v prophet_n 2._o theodoret_n do_v simple_o reprehend_v the_o jew_n for_o deny_v daniel_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n daniel_n and_o this_o book_n to_o be_v any_o of_o the_o prophetical_a write_n so_o also_o junius_n affirm_v that_o the_o jew_n deny_v this_o book_n to_o be_v count_v among_o the_o hagiographa_n or_o holy_a write_n 3._o but_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o polanus_fw-la set_v it_o down_o that_o the_o elder_a jew_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o book_n to_o be_v authentical_a and_o canonical_a and_o equal_a in_o authority_n to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o psalm_n the_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n the_o lamentation_n of_o jeremie_n and_o diverse_a of_o they_o have_v write_v commentary_n upon_o this_o book_n as_o r._n solomon_n r._n levi_n ben_n gerson_n r._n abraham_n aben_n ezra_n r._n saadia_n with_o other_o but_o the_o late_a rabbin_n do_v deny_v the_o book_n of_o daniel_n to_o be_v authentical_a and_o therefore_o seldom_o read_v it_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o experience_n how_o diverse_a rabbin_n in_o moravia_n who_o help_n he_o use_v prologo●●_n do_v confess_v that_o they_o seldom_o do_v read_v the_o pprophecy_n of_o daniel_n the_o occasion_n whereof_o he_o think_v to_o be_v this_o because_o daniel_n do_v so_o evident_o point_v out_o the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n his_o come_n 4._o but_o this_o error_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o reject_v this_o pprophecy_n of_o daniel_n may_v thus_o further_o be_v refute_v 1._o the_o book_n which_o be_v call_v hagiographa_n holy_a write_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n either_o they_o be_v take_v for_o those_o book_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o by_o the_o ark_n and_o have_v the_o miraculous_a &_o extraordinary_a approbation_n by_o the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n &_o other_o visible_a demonstration_n or_o for_o such_o canonical_a book_n which_o though_o they_o have_v not_o that_o allowance_n be_v write_v after_o the_o captivity_n when_o those_o visible_a monument_n of_o the_o ark_n the_o vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_v cease_v yet_o be_v write_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o commend_v to_o his_o church_n and_o three_o those_o book_n be_v call_v holy_a write_n which_o be_v not_o make_v of_o canonical_a authority_n but_o only_o prefer_v before_o other_o humane_a write_n and_o receive_v of_o the_o church_n into_o some_o high_a order_n though_o not_o make_v equal_a to_o the_o the_o scripture_n now_o though_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o daniel_n be_v not_o of_o the_o first_o sort_n yet_o that_o it_o be_v authentical_a and_o canonical_a of_o the_o second_o it_o thus_o may_v appear_v the_o authority_n then_o of_o this_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o testimony_n both_o internal_a and_o external_a the_o external_a be_v either_o divine_a or_o humane_a the_o divine_a essential_a or_o accidental_a the_o humane_a be_v either_o ecclesiastical_a and_o domestical_a or_o foreign_a or_o profane_a these_o further_a shall_v thus_o be_v declare_v in_o their_o order_n 1._o the_o internal_a testimony_n est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la testificatio_fw-la the_o inward_a witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o clear_v our_o understanding_n that_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o divine_a pprophecy_n of_o daniel_n by_o the_o which_o he_o write_v it_o 2._o the_o divine_a external_a testimony_n which_o be_v call_v essential_a be_v consensio_fw-la cum_fw-la divino_fw-la canone_o the_o agreement_n which_o this_o pprophecy_n have_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o warrant_n which_o daniel_n have_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n matth._n 24._o 15._o 3._o the_o accidental_a be_v à_fw-fr signis_fw-la &_o eventis_fw-la from_o the_o sign_n which_o god_n join_v with_o the_o pprophecy_n as_o daniel_n interpretation_n of_o dream_n and_o his_o preservation_n from_o the_o lion_n c._n 6._o the_o event_n be_v the_o true_a and_o sensible_a accomplishment_n of_o the_o prediction_n and_o prophecy_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n as_o all_o history_n which_o do_v write_v of_o these_o kingdom_n do_v bear_v record_n and_o where_o these_o two_o do_v concur_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n namely_o the_o sign_n and_o event_n they_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v regard_v deut._n 17._o 4._o the_o ecclesiastical_a testimony_n be_v the_o consent_n of_o god_n church_n and_o general_a approbation_n of_o the_o servant_n and_o worshipper_n of_o god_n which_o though_o it_o be_v not_o so_o forcible_a to_o persuade_v we_o as_o the_o former_a yet_o it_o be_v a_o good_a motion_n and_o inducement_n join_v with_o the_o rest_n hereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o testimony_n of_o josephus_n appio_n that_o all_o the_o book_n which_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o time_n of_o artaxerxes_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n 5._o the_o foreign_a testimony_n be_v the_o authority_n and_o allowance_n which_o this_o book_n find_v even_o among_o the_o heathen_a as_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n be_v write_v in_o the_o chalde_n tongue_n which_o show_v that_o the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v even_o evident_a to_o the_o chaldean_n junius_n and_o here_o may_v be_v remember_v how_o laddus_a the_o high_a priest_n show_v daniel_n prophesy_v unto_o alexander_n the_o great_a and_o by_o name_n that_o vision_n c._n 8._o how_o the_o goat_n which_o signify_v the_o grecian_n overcome_v the_o ram_n which_o betoken_v the_o persian_a monarchy_n as_o josephus_n report_v whereupon_o this_o book_n be_v have_v in_o great_a admiration_n of_o alexander_n quest._n 12._o of_o the_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n pererius_n give_v these_o four_o reason_n and_o cause_n thereof_o 1._o because_o diverse_a thing_n be_v otherwise_o report_v of_o foreign_a historiographer_n than_o they_o be_v remember_v in_o this_o book_n as_o in_o the_o 2._o chap._n nebuchadonazer_n be_v make_v the_o mighty_a king_n upon_o the_o earth_n whereas_o herodotus_n much_o more_o extoll_v the_o power_n of_o cyaxares_n who_o reign_v about_o that_o time_n among_o the_o mede_n c._n 5._o balthasar_n be_v say_v to_o be_v deprive_v both_o of_o life_n and_o kingdom_n by_o darius_n king_n of_o the_o mede_n whereas_o other_o writer_n ascribe_v it_o to_o cyrus_n c._n 11._o the_o angel_n foretell_v but_o of_o three_o king_n after_o cyrus_n unto_o alexander_n time_n whereas_o there_o be_v many_o more_o 2._o the_o transpose_n of_o the_o story_n which_o be_v often_o use_v in_o this_o book_n be_v a_o other_o cause_n of_o the_o darkness_n and_o obscurity_n as_o the_o prophecy_v contain_v in_o the_o 7._o and_o 8._o chap._n which_o be_v show_v unto_o daniel_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o balthasar_n in_o order_n shall_v be_v set_v before_o the_o 6._o c._n pererius_n add_v that_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n which_o happen_v when_o daniel_n be_v yet_o a_o child_n and_o the_o story_n of_o bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n which_o be_v do_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o chaldee_n yet_o stand_v shall_v be_v place_v t●e_v one_o before_o the_o second_o the_o other_o before_o the_o 5._o chap._n but_o concern_v these_o two_o pretend_a history_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o at_o the_o least_o when_o and_o at_o what_o time_n they_o be_v do_v and_o therefore_o this_o instance_n may_v be_v spare_v 3._o the_o prophecy_n and_o vision_n themselves_o be_v dark_a and_o obscure_a as_o that_o c._n 9_o of_o the_o 70._o week_n which_o term_v when_o it_o shall_v take_v beginning_n and_o how_o it_o proceed_v and_o be_v continue_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o deep_a understanding_n 4._o the_o variety_n of_o history_n which_o must_v be_v use_v as_o help_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n and_o the_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o so_o many_o state_n and_o kingdom_n in_o this_o book_n decipher_v do_v make_v this_o pprophecy_n intricate_a special_o because_o many_o of_o those_o historical_a writer_n who_o work_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o open_n and_o unfold_n of_o this_o mystical_a pprophecy_n be_v now_o lose_v and_o perish_v as_o hierome_n send_v we_o to_o the_o history_n of_o s●et●nius_n callinicus_n possidonius_fw-la thean_n andronicus_n polybius_n diodorus_n titus_n linius_n tr●gus_n pompeius_n who_o history_n concern_v these_o matter_n here_o prophesy_v of_o by_o daniel_n be_v now_o either_o in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a want_v 5._o and_o thus_o much_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o angel_n that_o this_o history_n shall_v seem_v obsure_n until_o the_o thing_n therein_o contain_v be_v accomplish_v as_o he_o say_v to_o daniel_n go_v thy_o way_n daniel_n for_o the_o word_n be_v close_v up_o and_o seal_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o time_n until_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v obscure_a to_o all_o but_o even_o afterward_o also_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v none_o of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v have_v understanding_n and_o
12._o jechonias_n beget_v salathiel_n pererius_n observe_v out_o of_o epiphanius_n and_o beza_n also_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n jechonias_n be_v take_v for_o jehoiakim_n the_o father_n in_o the_o latter_a for_o the_o son_n for_o otherwise_o there_o be_v not_o 42._o but_o only_o 41._o generation_n there_o rehearse_v quest._n 4._o why_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n have_v such_o a_o envy_n against_o jehoiakim_n 1._o first_o nabuchadnezzar_n come_v against_o he_o because_o he_o be_v make_v king_n by_o pharaoh_n necho_n king_n of_o egypt_n with_o who_o nabuchadnezzar_n have_v war_n and_o subdue_v his_o country_n and_o thereupon_o jehoiakim_n become_v tributary_n to_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n 2._o but_o nebuchadnezzars_n hatred_n be_v more_o increase_v afterward_o when_o as_o after_o three_o year_n jehoiakim_n rebel_v against_o he_o and_o will_v have_v cast_v off_o his_o yoke_n then_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n come_v up_o the_o second_o time_n and_o carry_v jehoiakim_n away_o captive_a who_o after_o he_o be_v dead_a be_v cast_v out_o and_o lay_v unbury_v according_a to_o jeremie_n his_o pprophecy_n c._n 22._o 19_o 3._o but_o the_o great_a cause_n of_o all_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o god_n to_o punish_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o people_n for_o he_o kill_v the_o prophet_n viiah_n jerem._n 26._o cut_v jeremie_n his_o pprophecy_n with_o a_o knife_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o fire_n jerem._n 36._o beside_o there_o be_v find_v in_o his_o body_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a mark_n of_o idolatry_n as_o lyranus_fw-la follow_v the_o hebrew_n note_v upon_o that_o place_n 2._o chron._n 36._o 8._o concern_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o act_n of_o jehoiakim_n and_o his_o abomination_n which_o he_o do_v and_o that_o which_o be_v find_v upon_o he_o etc._n etc._n god_n therefore_o for_o his_o cruelty_n impiety_n idolatry_n bring_v this_o judgement_n upon_o he_o pere_n quest._n 5._o of_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o king_n of_o babel_n and_o how_o many_o there_o be_v of_o that_o name_n 1._o pintus_fw-la think_v that_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v a_o general_a name_n to_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n as_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o philistine_n of_o abimelek_n and_o he_o further_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o this_o nabuchadnezzar_n have_v a_o son_n of_o the_o same_o name_n and_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o nabuchadnezzar_n mention_v in_o the_o story_n of_o judith_n who_o send_v holofernes_n against_o the_o jew_n for_o that_o be_v after_o the_o return_n of_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o captivity_n as_o appear_v judith_n 5._o beside_o he_o think_v that_o neither_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o father_n nor_o the_o son_n be_v that_o nabuchadnezzar_n which_o destroy_v tyrus_n according_a to_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o ezechiel_n 26._o 7._o which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v cyrus_n or_o alexander_n but_o pintus_fw-la be_v in_o many_o thing_n here_o deceive_v 1._o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a history_n of_o scripture_n that_o all_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n but_o the_o contrary_a rather_o appear_v for_o this_o king_n son_n name_n be_v evilmerodach_n 2._o king_n 25._o 27._o and_o his_o son_n balthasar_n dan._n 5._o 2._o and_o this_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v the_o son_n not_o the_o father_n and_o the_o second_o be_v call_v great_a nabuchadnezzar_n for_o his_o great_a exploit_n and_o many_o victory_n for_o next_o unto_o this_o succeed_a evilmerodach_n so_o throughout_o the_o whole_a pprophecy_n of_o daniel_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o second_o nabuchadnezzar_n jun._n 3._o we_o easy_o agree_v that_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v be_v that_o nabuchadnezzar_n mention_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judith_n for_o who_o that_o be_v it_o be_v uncertain_a and_o there_o be_v small_a certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o book_n beside_o for_o pintus_fw-la will_v have_v that_o story_n refer_v to_o the_o time_n after_o the_o captivity_n pererius_n think_v it_o be_v do_v before_o the_o captivity_n in_o the_o time_n of_o manasses_n but_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v stand_v not_o the_o first_o for_o we_o read_v of_o no_o nabuchadnezzar_n after_o the_o captivity_n when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o chaldean_n to_o the_o persian_n nor_o the_o second_o for_o that_o story_n of_o judith_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o cast_n down_o of_o the_o temple_n cap._n 5._o 18._o which_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v do_v in_o the_o day_n of_o manasseh_n 4._o this_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v the_o same_o which_o besiege_v tyrus_n which_o he_o besiege_v 13._o year_n as_o witness_v josephus_n lib._n 10._o c._n 11._o he_o can_v not_o be_v cyrus_n or_o alexander_n for_o he_o be_v call_v the_o king_n of_o babel_n ezek._n 26._o 7._o 2._o pererius_n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v two_o nebuchadnezzars_n the_o one_o here_o speak_v of_o and_o in_o the_o prophet_n the_o other_o whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judith_n who_o he_o take_v to_o have_v be_v before_o this_o and_o he_o mislike_v their_o opinion_n who_o take_v this_o nabuchadnezzar_n some_o for_o cyrus_n some_o for_o cambyses_n some_o for_o artaxerxes_n or_o darius_n ochus_n the_o last_o king_n but_o one_o of_o the_o persian_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o temple_n yet_o build_v again_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o cyrus_n and_o cambyses_n as_o be_v mention_v judith_n 5._o and_o artaxerxes_n be_v 200._o year_n after_o the_o return_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o captivity_n whereas_o the_o story_n of_o judith_n seem_v to_o have_v fall_v out_o immediate_o after_o judith_n 5._o 19_o pere_n contra._n 1._o it_o appear_v what_o small_a certainty_n there_o be_v of_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n of_o judith_n see_v it_o can_v be_v agree_v upon_o who_o that_o king_n nabuchadnezzar_n be_v 2._o he_o can_v not_o be_v the_o elder_a nabuchadnezzar_n for_o in_o his_o time_n the_o temple_n be_v not_o destroy_v but_o in_o his_o son_n but_o before_o the_o time_n of_o judith_n it_o have_v be_v destroy_v judith_n 5._o 18._o 3._o wherefore_o their_o opinion_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v that_o make_v two_o nebuchadnezzars_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n who_o be_v call_v nabuchadnezzar_n the_o great_a jun._n calvin_n bullinger_n polanus_fw-la so_o also_o josephus_n who_o give_v unto_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o elder_a 23._o year_n and_o to_o the_o other_o 43._o this_o nabuchadnezzar_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o same_o who_o ptolemy_n call_v nabopolassar_n in_o the_o 19_o year_n of_o who_o reign_n he_o say_v the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n begin_v polan_n quest._n 6._o of_o the_o act_n and_o exploit_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n 1._o josephus_n out_o of_o berosus_n who_o write_v of_o the_o chalde_n affair_n report_v of_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o second_o that_o be_v send_v by_o his_o father_n the_o elder_a nabuchadnezzar_n against_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n who_o revolt_v from_o he_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n hear_v of_o his_o father_n death_n return_v to_o babylon_n and_o take_v the_o government_n upon_o he_o where_o he_o do_v many_o princely_a and_o sumptuous_a work_n he_o beautify_v the_o temple_n of_o belus_n repair_v the_o edifice_n of_o the_o city_n enlarge_v the_o river_n compass_v the_o city_n with_o a_o treble_a wall_n build_v a_o goodly_a palace_n in_o the_o space_n of_o 25._o day_n which_o seem_v incredible_a and_o build_v high_a rock_n and_o mountain_n upon_o vault_n of_o stone_n and_o upon_o they_o plant_v orchard_n as_o hang_v aloft_o because_o his_o wife_n be_v bring_v up_o in_o medea_n desire_v to_o see_v some_o resemblance_n of_o her_o country_n for_o the_o like_a act_n he_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o history_n of_o megasthenes_n the_o indian_a historiographer_n and_o diocles_n who_o write_v of_o the_o persian_a history_n and_o philostratus_n of_o the_o pheniceans_n who_o witness_v that_o nabuchadnezzar_n besiege_v tyrus_n 13._o year_n which_o begin_v in_o the_o 7._o year_n of_o his_o reign_n as_o pererius_n note_v 2._o his_o act_n set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v these_o in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o jehoiakim_n he_o besiege_v jerusalem_n and_o carry_v the_o spoil_n of_o the_o city_n into_o babylon_n in_o the_o 11._o year_n he_o come_v again_o and_o take_v the_o city_n and_o carry_v many_o into_o captivity_n and_o slay_v jehoiakim_n who_o want_v the_o honour_n of_o burial_n then_o he_o set_v in_o his_o place_n his_o son_n jehoaichin_n who_o after_o 3._o month_n he_o remoove_v and_o appoint_v zedekiah_n in_o his_o place_n in_o who_o 11._o year_n which_o be_v the_o 18._o of_o nabuchadnezzar_n he_o take_v zedekiah_n and_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n and_o the_o 19_o year_n he_o burn_v the_o city_n and_o temple_n and_o carry_v away_o the_o people_n captive_a these_o thing_n be_v thus_o testify_v 2._o
nego_fw-la which_o be_v the_o star_n of_o venus_n bullin_n some_o think_v it_o shall_v be_v read_v abednebo_n the_o servant_n of_o nebo_n the_o god_n of_o the_o chaldean_n some_o give_v the_o sense_n servus_n anxius_fw-la a_o careful_a servant_n pintus_fw-la but_o the_o true_a derivation_n be_v of_o ghebat_fw-la a_o servant_n and_o nego_fw-la fire_n which_o the_o chaldean_n worship_v as_o a_o god_n so_o then_o in_o all_o these_o four_o name_n there_o be_v some_o memorial_n of_o the_o chaldean_a idol_n of_o bel_n in_o the_o first_o rach_n which_o be_v the_o sun_n in_o the_o next_o of_o their_o goddess_n shacah_n which_o be_v venus_n in_o the_o three_o and_o of_o their_o god_n nego_fw-la in_o the_o last_o jun._n polan_n quest._n 29._o ver._n 8._o why_o daniel_n refuse_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o king_n meat_n and_o of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o abstinence_n ver._n 8._o d●●iel_n have_v determine_v in_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o will_v not_o defile_v himself_o with_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o king_n meat_n 1._o here_o we_o may_v remember_v that_o there_o be_v four_o kind_n of_o unlawful_a abstinence_n 1._o some_o of_o the_o philosopher_n abstinentia_fw-la as_o pythagoras_n empedocles_n apollonius_n porphyrius_n because_o they_o imagine_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n do_v pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o beast_n &_o in_o varia_fw-la se_fw-la corpora_fw-la endure_v and_o do_v as_o it_o be_v clothe_v themselves_o with_o diverse_a body_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o abstain_v from_o the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n 2._o there_o be_v certain_a heretic_n who_o therefore_o will_v eat_v no_o flesh_n because_o they_o hold_v they_o to_o be_v evil_a by_o nature_n &_o a_o malo_fw-la quodam_fw-la principio_fw-la conditas_fw-la and_o make_v at_o the_o first_o by_o some_o evil_a power_n such_o be_v the_o heretic_n martion_n tacianus_n the_o encratite_n the_o manichee_n against_o who_o augustine_n do_v write_v at_o large_a confute_v their_o error_n but_o special_o in_o his_o book_n against_o blasphemous_a faustus_n the_o manichee_n 3._o some_o be_v in_o a_o other_o error_n who_o at_o the_o first_o be_v convert_v from_o judais●e_n do_v think_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o abstain_v from_o certain_a meat_n as_o unclean_a according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n concern_v who_o the_o apostle_n make_v a_o decree_n act._n 15._o 4._o and_o some_o other_o there_o be_v which_o have_v a_o perverse_a opinion_n of_o fast_v which_o think_v that_o the_o perfection_n of_o a_o christian_a consist_v in_o fast_v or_o they_o fast_o only_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o man_n and_o opinion_n of_o the_o world_n all_o these_o be_v in_o great_a error_n and_o do_v offend_v in_o their_o fast_n but_o daniel_n abstinence_n be_v of_o none_o of_o these_o kind_n pere_n quest._n 30._o the_o cause_n which_o move_v daniel_n to_o forbear_v the_o king_n meat_n there_o be_v many_o pollution_n in_o the_o meat_n which_o serve_v at_o the_o king_n table_n 1._o they_o may_v eat_v such_o flesh_n as_o be_v count_v unclean_a by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n as_o swine_n flesh_n hare_n and_o coney_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v unclean_a by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o diverse_a other_o both_o beast_n fish_n and_o foul_a as_o be_v declare_v deut._n 14._o which_o may_v be_v notwithstanding_o use_v as_o delicate_a meat_n in_o the_o king_n court_n pap_n bullinger_n which_o meat_n though_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o defile_v not_o yet_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n be_v forbid_v they_o defile_v the_o eater_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o disobedience_n to_o the_o law_n 2._o beside_o they_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o feast_n do_v praise_v the_o god_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o so_o consecrate_v their_o meat_n and_o table_n to_o their_o idol_n for_o which_o cause_n daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n abstain_v jun._n polan_n lyran._n hugo_n cardi._n and_o though_o the_o first_o observation_n of_o meat_n be_v only_o legal_a and_o cease_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ceremony_n yet_o the_o abstain_v from_o thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n be_v perpetual_a afterward_o observe_v of_o the_o christian_n as_o both_o be_v evident_a by_o s._n paul_n 1._o cor._n 8._o 10._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o those_o that_o sit_v down_o in_o the_o idol_n temple_n and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o caecilius_n object_v to_o the_o christian_n arnob._n praeceptos_fw-la &_o delibatos_fw-la altaribus_fw-la cibos_fw-la abhorretis_fw-la etc._n etc._n you_o abhor_v meat_n command_v that_o be_v consecrate_v to_o idol_n 3._o beside_o sciebat_fw-la perturbationum_fw-la fontem_fw-la esse_fw-la intemperantiam_fw-la he_o do_v know_v that_o intemperancy_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o distemperature_n he_o remember_v that_o adam_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o paradise_n for_o eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n and_o esau_n lose_v his_o birthright_n for_o a_o mess_n of_o pottage_n daniel_n therefore_o and_o the_o rest_n abstain_v lest_o they_o may_v be_v entangle_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o their_o delicate_a meat_n pintus_fw-la 4._o an_o other_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o king_n by_o this_o sweet_a poison_n shall_v not_o cause_v he_o to_o forget_v his_o religion_n geneven_n ne_fw-la inescaretur_fw-la talibus_fw-la illecebris_fw-la lest_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v catch_v with_o such_o bait_n he_o therefore_o shun_v the_o occasion_n quest._n 31._o vers_fw-la 8._o how_o daniel_n shall_v have_v be_v defile_v with_o the_o king_n meat_n though_o that_o the_o meat_n itself_o in_o it_o own_o nature_n can_v not_o have_v defile_v daniel_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n say_v that_o which_o go_v into_o the_o mouth_n defile_v not_o the_o man_n matth._n 15._o 11._o yet_o four_o way_n daniel_n shall_v have_v defile_v himself_o and_o other_o 1._o he_o have_v offend_v the_o godly_a if_o they_o be_v weak_a in_o follow_v his_o example_n so_o wound_v their_o own_o conscience_n if_o they_o be_v strong_a yet_o they_o will_v have_v grieve_v to_o see_v the_o law_n of_o god_n transgress_v 2._o the_o profane_a shall_v have_v be_v scandalize_v if_o they_o be_v enemy_n in_o cause_v they_o to_o blaspheme_v if_o they_o be_v indifferent_a and_o such_o as_o of_o who_o there_o may_v be_v hope_n in_o put_v before_o they_o a_o stumble_a block_n they_o may_v have_v discourage_v they_o from_o embrace_v their_o religion_n in_o see_v they_o to_o do_v contrary_a to_o their_o own_o profession_n 3._o their_o own_o conscience_n they_o shall_v have_v defile_v in_o sin_v against_o the_o knowledge_n and_o disobey_v the_o law_n 4._o god_n they_o shall_v have_v contemn_v in_o neglect_v his_o law_n and_o so_o in_o a_o manner_n have_v pollute_v he_o as_o in_o another_o case_n the_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o have_v pollute_v god_n for_o offer_v unclean_a bread_n upon_o his_o altar_n malach._n 1._o 7._o polan_n quest._n 32._o whether_o daniel_n ever_o after_o abstain_v from_o the_o king_n meat_n it_o be_v like_o that_o daniel_n afterward_o do_v both_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o the_o king_n provision_n for_o he_o be_v of_o the_o king_n court_n and_o be_v the_o chief_a officer_n about_o the_o king_n and_o sit_v in_o the_o king_n gate_n cap._n 2._o 49._o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o unlike_a but_o that_o he_o do_v live_v at_o the_o king_n diet_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v of_o joseph_n that_o be_v in_o the_o like_a estimation_n with_o pharaoh_n that_o he_o refuse_v the_o king_n meat_n calvin_n the_o reason_n why_o daniel_n abstain_v now_o and_o not_o afterward_o may_v be_v these_o 1._o daniel_n principio_fw-la abstinuit_fw-la à_fw-la lautitijs_fw-la aulae_fw-la ne_fw-la inescaretur_fw-la at_o the_o beginning_n abstain_v from_o the_o delicate_n of_o the_o court_n lest_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v entangle_v cal._n but_o afterward_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a fear_n when_o daniel_n be_v call_v to_o place_n of_o government_n and_o depend_v not_o upon_o the_o command_n and_o authority_n of_o other_o as_o now_o he_o do_v so_o also_o pellic●iam_fw-la grandaevus_fw-la &_o extra_fw-la periculum_fw-la constitutus_fw-la vinum_fw-la bibisse_fw-la legitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o he_o wax_v old_a and_o be_v out_o of_o danger_n he_o be_v find_v to_o have_v drink_v wine_n etc._n etc._n 2._o this_o must_v be_v admit_v ceremonialia_fw-la cedere_fw-la magnae_fw-la necessitati_fw-la that_o the_o ceremoniall_n must_v give_v place_n unto_o extreme_a necessity_n it_o be_v no_o question_n but_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v in_o captivity_n do_v sometime_o eat_v of_o the_o meat_n forbid_v by_o the_o law_n rather_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v famish_v but_o if_o the_o eat_n of_o such_o meat_n have_v be_v a_o denial_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n in_o that_o case_n they_o shall_v rather_o have_v choose_v to_o die_v then_o in_o the_o least_o ceremony_n to_o deny_v their_o faith_n osian_a daniel_n may_v then_o in_o his_o captivity_n upon_o such_o necessity_n eat_v such_o thing_n as_o in_o
than_o one_o shall_v as_o well_o have_v such_o dream_n as_o a_o other_o for_o in_o the_o time_n of_o rest_n every_o man_n soul_n be_v free_a from_o the_o business_n of_o the_o day_n 4._o porphyrius_n think_v that_o the_o notion_n which_o be_v natural_o in_o the_o soul_n which_o it_o bring_v with_o it_o into_o the_o body_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o dream_n which_o notion_n show_v more_o free_o in_o the_o night_n then_o in_o the_o day_n but_o christian_a religion_n acknowledge_v no_o such_o former_a notion_n or_o pre-existence_n of_o the_o soul_n before_o it_o come_v to_o the_o body_n for_o the_o lord_n form_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n within_o he_o zachar._n 12._o 1._o 5._o synesius_n make_v the_o fantastical_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o dream_n that_o as_o the_o representation_n of_o diverse_a thing_n be_v raise_v in_o the_o fantasy_n so_o the_o soul_n thereupon_o conceive_v dream_n and_o therefore_o pythogoras_n go_v to_o bed_n use_v to_o fall_v asleep_a with_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o harp_n and_o so_o prepare_v himself_o to_o have_v quiet_a and_o pleasant_a dream_n but_o yet_o the_o cause_n appear_v not_o why_o such_o imagination_n and_o representation_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o in_o the_o fantasy_n the_o fantasy_n affect_v the_o soul_n but_o how_o come_v the_o fantasy_n to_o be_v so_o affect_v first_o 6._o hypocrates_n make_v two_o cause_n of_o dream_n insomnijs_fw-la the_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a instinct_n which_o be_v infuse_v of_o god_n and_o the_o natural_a disposition_n of_o the_o body_n for_o as_o the_o humour_n be_v affect_v if_o there_o be_v emptiness_n or_o fullness_n or_o any_o distemperature_n in_o the_o body_n the_o dream_n be_v answerable_a but_o as_o these_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o divine_a and_o natural_a dream_n so_o of_o other_o dream_n other_o cause_n must_v be_v find_v out_o hypocrates_n then_o touch_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o some_o but_o not_o of_o all_o dream_n 7._o gregory_n make_v six_o cause_n of_o dream_n 1._o the_o fullness_n or_o emptiness_n of_o the_o body_n 2._o the_o diu●ne_a cogitation_n 3._o the_o illusion_n of_o satan_n 4._o the_o illusion_n of_o satan_n and_o man_n thought_n together_o 5._o the_o divine_a revelation_n 6._o the_o divine_a instinct_n and_o humane_a thought_n concur_v together_o but_o as_o hypocrates_n allege_v not_o all_o the_o cause_n so_o gregory_n make_v more_o cause_n than_o he_o need_v as_o now_o shall_v be_v show_v 8._o as_o then_o there_o be_v four_o sort_n of_o dream_n as_o have_v be_v before_o declare_v quest._n 42._o so_o there_o be_v four_o cause_n of_o the_o same_o 1._o natural_a dream_n proceed_v of_o natural_a cause_n as_o choleric_a man_n dream_v of_o fire_n phlegmatic_a of_o water_n melancholic_a man_n of_o darkness_n and_o blackness_n and_o any_o distemper_a humour_n or_o affect_a part_n of_o the_o body_n often_o raise_v a_o dream_n agreeable_a prae●agijs_fw-la as_o galen_n report_v of_o one_o that_o dream_v that_o one_o of_o his_o leg_n be_v make_v of_o stone_n and_o present_o after_o he_o be_v take_v with_o a_o palsy_n and_o nummenesse_n in_o that_o leg_n 50._o and_o pliny_n write_v how_o p._n cornelius_n ruffinus_n in_o his_o sleep_n think_v that_o he_o sudden_o become_v blind_a and_o when_o he_o awake_v he_o be_v blind_a in_o deed_n 2._o of_o humane_a dream_n humane_a affair_n be_v the_o cause_n which_o leave_v a_o strong_a impression_n in_o the_o mind_n whereby_o such_o like_a dream_n be_v engender_v in_o the_o night_n as_o the_o thought_n be_v in_o the_o day_n so_o mariner_n dream_v of_o the_o sea_n and_o fish_n husbandman_n of_o the_o field_n shepherd_n of_o their_o sheep_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v hannibal_n dream_n who_o have_v now_o swallow_v italy_n in_o his_o desire_n as_o he_o transport_v his_o army_n from_o spain_n thither_o he_o have_v a_o dream_n wherein_o he_o see_v a_o most_o hideous_a serpent_n destroy_v and_o devour_v all_o where_o he_o go_v this_o dream_n be_v answerable_a to_o his_o desire_n and_o seem_v to_o issue_v forth_o of_o his_o former_a thought_n 3._o the_o three_o sort_n of_o dream_n be_v diabolical_a which_o satan_n cast_v into_o man_n mind_n to_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v they_o and_o of_o these_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o author_n who_o be_v the_o three_o general_a cause_n of_o dream_n for_o if_o some_o dream_n be_v not_o cause_v by_o satan_n why_o shall_v the_o lord_n condemn_v such_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n which_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v the_o people_n deut._n 13._o 1._o of_o this_o kind_n may_v be_v think_v alexander_n dream_n to_o have_v be_v who_o come_v to_o ptolemy_n the_o next_o king_n of_o egypt_n after_o be_v sore_o wound_v by_o a_o venomous_a dart_n and_o of_o that_o wound_n like_a to_o die_v fall_v asleep_a by_o he_o and_o in_o his_o sleep_n see_v a_o serpent_n bring_v a_o root_n in_o his_o mouth_n show_v the_o place_n where_o it_o grow_v whereby_o ptolemy_n be_v heal_v these_o satanical_a dream_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n for_o some_o of_o they_o do_v prognosticate_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v which_o satan_n can_v foretell_v two_o way_n either_o by_o natural_a cause_n he_o can_v foresee_v the_o event_n or_o he_o do_v foretell_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o know_v he_o be_v permit_v of_o god_n to_o do_v the_o other_o kind_n of_o diabolical_a dream_n tend_v to_o the_o incite_n and_o stir_v up_o of_o man_n to_o sin_n as_o murder_v lust_n or_o other_o ungodliness_n 4._o the_o four_o cause_n of_o dream_n be_v god_n himself_o who_o by_o dream_n and_o vision_n in_o the_o night_n diverse_o instruct_v man_n and_o teveal_v unto_o they_o thing_n to_o come_v ex_fw-la perer._n quest._n 46._o how_o diabolical_a and_o divine_a dream_n may_v be_v discern_v 1._o diabolical_a dream_n be_v discern_v 1._o by_o the_o matter_n if_o they_o be_v unchaste_a and_o unclean_a dream_n provoke_v unto_o any_o vice_n or_o impiety_n 2._o by_o the_o end_n if_o one_o shall_v have_v a_o revelation_n in_o a_o dream_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v whereof_o there_o be_v no_o profitable_a end_n but_o only_o the_o feed_n of_o man_n curiosity_n or_o the_o maintain_n of_o superstition_n 3._o by_o man_n person_n also_o a_o conjecture_n may_v be_v make_v as_o if_o unclean_a and_o corrupt_a dream_n be_v offer_v unto_o godly_a and_o righteous_a man_n therein_o they_o be_v to_o suspect_v the_o craft_n of_o satan_n that_o he_o go_v about_o to_o assault_v and_o tempt_v they_o 2._o concern_v divine_a dream_n they_o be_v two_o way_n principal_o discern_v by_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o matter_n as_o when_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v reveal_v the_o knowledge_n whereof_o only_o belong_v unto_o god_n or_o the_o lord_n discover_v man_n secret_a thought_n which_o he_o only_o can_v descry_v the_o other_o way_n be_v by_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o mind_n when_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o evident_o reveal_v himself_o unto_o the_o soul_n and_o mind_n of_o man_n that_o he_o nothing_o doubt_v of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o dream_n but_o know_v assure_o that_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o dream_n such_o be_v the_o dream_n which_o abraham_n joseph_n daniel_n paul_n have_v for_o like_a as_o natural_o the_o soul_n have_v light_a to_o discern_v of_o the_o first_o notion_n and_o principle_n so_o the_o mind_n in_o this_o case_n be_v illuminate_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o divine_a instinct_n 3._o in_o diverse_a manner_n and_o to_o diverse_a purpose_n do_v the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o man_n in_o dream_n 1._o sometime_o he_o terrify_v and_o fear_v they_o as_o he_o stay_v abimelek_n and_o laban_n by_o fearful_a dream_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v no_o hurt_n the_o one_o to_o abraham_n the_o other_o to_o jaakob_n 2._o sometime_o the_o lord_n encourage_v man_n by_o dream_n to_o enterprise_v some_o great_a work_n as_o he_o do_v gedeon_n judg._n 7._o 9_o 3._o he_o admonish_v some_o by_o dream_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v as_o paul_n act._n 16._o and_o joseph_n matth._n 1._o 4._o god_n instruct_v by_o dream_n concern_v thing_n to_o come_v as_o he_o do_v in_o pharaoh_n and_o nabuchadnezzers_n dream_n 4._o and_o as_o the_o end_n and_o purpose_n be_v diverse_a why_o the_o lord_n send_v dream_n so_o also_o the_o kind_n be_v diverse_a 1._o some_o divine_a dream_n be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a and_o need_v no_o interpretation_n such_o be_v the_o dream_n of_o joseph_n of_o the_o star_n and_o the_o sheaf_n 2._o sometime_o god_n speak_v with_o they_o himself_o in_o their_o dream_n as_o with_o abimelech_n gen._n 20._o sometime_o a_o angel_n appear_v as_o to_o joseph_n matth._n 1._o sometime_o a_o man_n as_o to_o paul_n act._n 16._o 3._o sometime_o god_n send_v dream_v not_o expect_v or_o desire_v such_o be_v pharaoh_n and_o nebuchadnezzers_n dream_n sometime_o they_o be_v first_o crave_v and_o
all_o by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o they_o be_v ancient_a think_v scorn_n that_o such_o a_o young_a man_n shall_v be_v join_v unto_o they_o perer._n 3._o the_o king_n also_o may_v spare_v daniel_n as_o have_v yet_o have_v no_o great_a trial_n of_o his_o faithfulness_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o at_o the_o first_o commit_v his_o secret_n to_o a_o stranger_n calvin_n 4._o peretius_fw-la think_v that_o nebuchadnezzer_n may_v have_v forget_v he_o in_o the_o space_n of_o 22._o year_n for_o so_o long_o it_o be_v since_o daniel_n first_o stand_v before_o the_o king_n but_o that_o can_v be_v for_o this_o year_n wherein_o nebuchadnezzer_n dream_v be_v but_o the_o second_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o daniel_n ministie_a and_o service_n in_o the_o court_n as_o be_v before_o show_v quest._n 1._o upon_o this_o chapter_n 5._o but_o herein_o chief_o we_o be_v to_o acknowledge_v god_n providence_n who_o so_o dispose_v that_o daniel_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v neither_o before_o nor_o together_o with_o the_o chaldean_n if_o he_o have_v be_v call_v first_o the_o magician_n may_v have_v say_v that_o they_o can_v have_v interpret_v the_o dream_n if_o they_o have_v be_v call_v if_o he_o have_v come_v with_o they_o and_o expound_v the_o dream_n the_o chaldean_n will_v have_v ascribe_v it_o to_o their_o own_o skill_n and_o so_o the_o ignorance_n and_o folly_n of_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v so_o manifest_o appear_v polan_n 6._o and_o further_a god_n to_o this_o end_n will_v not_o have_v daniel_n present_a with_o the_o rest_n to_o signify_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o truth_n match_v or_o mingle_v with_o the_o assembly_n of_o liar_n and_o hypocrite_n polan_n 9_o quest._n v_o 4._o of_o the_o aramite_n language_n whether_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o hebrew_n and_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o chalde_n v_o 14._o then_o speak_v the_o chaldean_n to_o the_o king_n in_o the_o aramite_n language_n 1._o hierome_n by_o this_o argument_n confute_v the_o opinion_n of_o philo_n who_o take_v the_o hebrew_n and_o chalde_n language_n for_o all_o one_o because_o daniel_n then_o need_v not_o to_o have_v learn_v the_o chaldean_a tongue_n c._n 1._o 5._o and_o further_o that_o they_o differ_v it_o be_v manifest_a by_o that_o speech_n of_o eliakim_n to_o rabshakeh_n speak_v to_o thy_o s●ruants_n in_o the_o aramite_n language_n 26._o for_o we_o understand_v it_o and_o talk_v not_o with_o we_o in_o the_o jew_n tongue_n so_o the_o lord_n threaten_v by_o his_o prophet_n that_o he_o will_v bring_v a_o nation_n upon_o they_o 15._o who_o language_n they_o understand_v not_o mean_v the_o chaldean_n 2._o now_o although_o the_o ancient_a and_o pure_a hebrew_n tongue_n differ_v much_o from_o the_o chalde_n yet_o after_o the_o captivity_n the_o usual_a language_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v borrow_v much_o of_o the_o chalde_n tongue_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o long_a captivity_n among_o they_o and_o be_v compound_v partly_o of_o the_o chalde_n partly_o of_o the_o hebrew_n from_o their_o return_n from_o babylon_n until_o the_o day_n of_o out_o bless_a saviour_n be_v in_o the_o flesh_n perer._n 3._o but_o concern_v the_o syrian_a tongue_n some_o take_v it_o and_o the_o chalde_n for_o all_o one_o osiand_n some_o think_v that_o they_o differ_v only_o as_o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a lyran._n that_o the_o syriake_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v the_o more_o eloquent_a tongue_n genevens_n some_o think_v the_o chaldean_a and_o babylonian_a tongue_n be_v when_o call_v the_o syrian_a or_o aramite_n language_n because_o chaldea_n be_v count_v part_n of_o syria_n jun._n and_o it_o seem_v that_o in_o time_n pass_v there_o be_v small_a difference_n between_o they_o though_o now_o the_o ancient_a chalde_n tongue_n wherein_o part_n of_o ezra_n and_o daniel_n be_v write_v be_v far_o diverse_a both_o in_o character_n and_o sound_n from_o the_o syrian_a tongue_n wherein_o the_o learned_a jew_n write_v and_o speak_v at_o this_o day_n see_v more_o hereof_o quest._n 25._o c._n 1._o 10._o quest._n why_o the_o chaldean_n speak_v in_o the_o aramite_n language_n from_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o book_n unto_o the_o 4._o v_o of_o this_o chapter_n all_o be_v write_v in_o the_o hebrew_n word_n and_o character_n from_o this_o place_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 7._o chap._n the_o prophet_n use_v chalde_n word_n but_o hebrew_n charactr_n and_o then_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o book_n follow_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n and_o writing_n as_o before_o now_o the_o reason_n why_o these_o chaldean_n use_v the_o aramite_n language_n be_v these_o 1._o these_o wise_a man_n be_v of_o diverse_a country_n and_o so_o of_o diverse_a language_n therefore_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o syrian_a or_o chalde_n tongue_n which_o be_v know_v and_o understand_v of_o all_o perer._n 2._o some_o think_v they_o use_v it_o as_o the_o more_o eloquent_a tongue_n genevens_n 3._o or_o because_o it_o be_v the_o language_n which_o the_o king_n use_v perer._n 4._o or_o rather_o the_o syrian_a be_v the_o babylonian_a tongue_n which_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v fit_a for_o they_o to_o use_v 5._o and_o the_o lord_n hereby_o so_o dispose_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v manifest_a unto_o the_o chaldean_n that_o even_o they_o may_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o their_o own_o act_n and_o record_n which_o also_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o the_o more_o credit_n of_o this_o history_n among_o the_o chaldean_n that_o daniel_n set_v it_o down_o in_o the_o very_a same_o language_n wherein_o it_o be_v act_v polan_n 11._o quest._n v_o 8._o why_o the_o king_n say_v they_o will_v gain_v or_o redeem_v time_n 1._o it_o be_v the_o three_o interrogation_n or_o question_n which_o the_o king_n propound_v unto_o they_o the_o first_o be_v cum_fw-la simplici_fw-la denuntiatione_fw-la v_o 3._o with●●_n simple_a prolation_n and_o propound_v of_o his_o dream_n the_o second_o v_o 5._o cum_fw-la forti_fw-la comminatione_fw-la &_o praemij_fw-la promissione_n with_o a_o vehernent_a commination_n and_o threaten_a with_o promise_n also_o of_o reward_n the_o three_o v_o 9_o cum_fw-la falsi_fw-la suspicion_n with_o a_o suspicion_n of_o falsehood_n etc._n etc._n you_o have_v prepare_v lie_v and_o corrupt_a word_n 2._o by_o gain_v or_o redeem_n of_o time_n be_v understand_v occasionem_fw-la quaerere_fw-la evadendi_fw-la pericula_fw-la to_o seek_v occasion_n to_o escape_v the_o danger_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v eph._n 5._o 16._o redeem_v the_o time_n for_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a as_o traveller_n that_o fall_v into_o foul_a weather_n do_v watch_v their_o time_n and_o opportunity_n how_o to_o escape_v it_o and_o so_o to_o go_v on_o in_o their_o journey_n pintus_fw-la some_o understand_v by_o time_n spatium_fw-la vita_fw-la the_o term_n of_o their_o life_n which_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v prolong_v gloss._n lyran._n but_o it_o be_v more_o fit_o refer_v to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o dream_n which_o they_o will_v have_v shift_v off_o and_o so_o quarebant_fw-la dilationem_fw-la temporis_fw-la they_o seek_v to_o prolong_v the_o time_n that_o some_o other_o thing_n fall_v between_o the_o king_n may_v forget_v to_o urge_v that_o matter_n osiand_n &_o sic_fw-la daretur_fw-la effugiendi_fw-la ecoasio_fw-la and_o so_o they_o may_v have_v occasion_n to_o escape_v and_o avoid_v the_o danger_n 3._o but_o the_o king_n conjecture_n be_v not_o good_a that_o they_o which_o do_v not_o present_o make_v answer_n to_o the_o king_n do_v it_o to_o gain_v time_n and_o so_o to_o delude_v the_o king_n for_o there_o may_v be_v diverse_a and_o different_a cause_n of_o suspending_a one_o answer_n as_o cum_fw-la officium_fw-la pi●tatis_fw-la &_o charitatis_fw-la vetat_fw-la when_o as_o the_o office_n of_o piety_n or_o charity_n enjoin_v silence_n as_o the_o martyr_n which_o be_v urge_v to_o bewray_v their_o fellow_n will_v not_o make_v direct_a answer_n jun._n lection_n in_o daniel_n 4._o but_o the_o king_n other_o argument_n be_v good_a which_o he_o urge_v against_o these_o wiseman_n and_o chaldean_n v_o 9_o tell_v i_o the_o dream_n that_o i_o may_v know_v if_o you_o can_v declare_v i_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o the_o argument_n be_v this_o frame_v they_o which_o can_v give_v the_o interpretation_n of_o a_o dream_n can_v find_v out_o the_o dream_n itself_o for_o the_o one_o be_v of_o a_o divine_a instinct_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o and_o to_o god_n nothing_o be_v hide_v he_o can_v as_o well_o tell_v what_o the_o dream_n be_v as_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o but_o you_o can_v tell_v i_o my_o dream_n therefore_o neither_o can_v you_o interpret_v it_o though_o you_o know_v it_o you_o be_v then_o but_o impostor_n and_o deceiver_n polan_n but_o osiander_n collect_v otherwise_o non_fw-fr rest_n argumentabatur_fw-la rex_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o king_n reason_v not_o well_o as_o though_o it_o be_v
be_v send_v as_o he_o say_v thou_o have_v show_v now_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o desire_v of_o thou_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v full_a of_o care_n in_o this_o so_o weighty_a a_o business_n will_v give_v themselves_o to_o rest_n but_o they_o awake_v when_o other_o sleep_v so_o hugo_n card._n give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o this_o vision_n come_v in_o the_o night_n quod_fw-la tempus_fw-la magis_fw-la orationi_fw-la competit_fw-la because_o that_o time_n be_v fit_a for_o prayer_n 3._o and_o present_o after_o this_o thing_n be_v reveal_v it_o be_v say_v that_o daniel_n answer_v and_o say_v the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v praise_v but_o he_o can_v not_o thus_o answer_v and_o praise_n god_n in_o his_o sleep_n it_o be_v then_o such_o a_o vision_n in_o the_o night_n as_o paul_n have_v act._n 16._o 9_o when_o a_o man_n of_o macedonia_n appear_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v come_v and_o help_v us._n 4._o yet_o this_o further_a must_v be_v add_v that_o vision_n come_v not_o only_o by_o day_n but_o by_o night_n and_o not_o only_a when_o man_n be_v awake_a but_o when_o they_o sleep_v as_o daniel_n see_v a_o dream_n and_o have_v vision_n in_o his_o head_n as_o he_o lie_v upon_o his_o bed_n c._n 7._o 1._o such_o vision_n be_v more_o than_o dream_n and_o differ_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o more_o clear_a illumination_n and_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o thing_n such_o be_v salomon_n dream_v wherein_o he_o have_v a_o vision_n beside_o when_o actual_o the_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n be_v confer_v upon_o he_o 1._o king_n 3._o whereof_o see_v c._n 1._o qu._n 51._o yet_o dream_n and_o vision_n do_v differ_v in_o nature_n still_o though_o they_o may_v concur_v together_o the_o one_o be_v but_o a_o representation_n of_o the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o thing_n the_o other_o a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o 20._o quest._n of_o the_o form_n and_o order_n of_o daniel_n thanksgiving_n daniel_n thanksgiving_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o general_a v._n 20._o to_o 23._o or_o special_a and_o particular_a and_o either_o of_o they_o consist_v of_o the_o proposition_n contain_v the_o doxology_n or_o thanksgiving_n and_o the_o probation_n thereof_o 1._o in_o the_o general_a benediction_n in_o the_o proposition_n be_v express_v who_o be_v to_o be_v praise_v the_o name_n of_o god_n not_o the_o letter_n or_o syllable_n as_o the_o jew_n adore_v the_o name_n jehovah_n the_o papist_n the_o name_n jesus_n but_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v god_n himself_o and_o the_o adjunct_n of_o the_o time_n also_o be_v add_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o 2._o the_o probation_n be_v set_v forth_o brief_o for_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n be_v he_o than_o it_o be_v amplify_v by_o the_o effect_n first_o his_o power_n be_v declare_v by_o two_o effect_n the_o change_n of_o time_n and_o season_n and_o the_o take_n down_o and_o set_v up_o of_o king_n then_o his_o confidence_n by_o three_o effect_n 1._o in_o give_v wisdom_n for_o action_n 2._o understanding_n for_o contemplation_n 3._o and_o in_o discover_v secret_a thing_n which_o be_v amplify_v by_o the_o cause_n take_v from_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o god_n he_o know_v what_o be_v in_o darkness_n because_o with_o he_o be_v light_a 3._o then_o follow_v the_o special_a thanksgiving_n with_o the_o proposition_n wherein_o daniel_n give_v thanks_o for_o himself_o and_o the_o probation_n take_v from_o two_o effect_n in_o open_v unto_o they_o the_o king_n dream_n according_a to_o their_o desire_n and_o give_v they_o power_n and_o strength_n thereby_o to_o prevail_v against_o and_o overcome_v the_o imminent_a danger_n and_o peril_n of_o death_n the_o latter_a effect_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o first_o place_n quest._n 21._o v._n 19_o how_o daniel_n be_v say_v to_o have_v bless_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 1._o the_o lord_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 1._o because_o he_o make_v the_o heaven_n but_o other_o god_n have_v not_o make_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n jerem._n 11._o hug._n card._n 2._o and_o this_o show_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o true_a god_n and_o idol_n herein_o because_o they_o be_v worship_v only_o in_o the_o earth_n and_o not_o in_o heaven_n pint._n 3_o and_o god_n be_v so_o call_v because_o he_o be_v habitator_n coeli_fw-la he_o inhabit_v and_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v heaven_n be_v my_o seat_n or_o throne_n isa._n 66._o 1._o not_o that_o god_n be_v limit_v and_o confine_v in_o the_o heaven_n but_o there_o be_v the_o most_o glorious_a and_o visible_a sign_n of_o his_o presence_n pintus_fw-la 4._o and_o by_o this_o title_n be_v set_v forth_o god_n glory_n greatness_n and_o power_n because_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o most_o glorious_a of_o god_n creature_n and_o do_v sway_v thing_n below_o in_o the_o earth_n polan_n 2._o to_o bless_v be_v take_v diverse_o in_o scripture_n 1._o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v man_n benedicere_fw-la to_o bless_v be_v the_o same_o that_o benefacere_fw-la to_o bestow_v benefit_n as_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o abraham_n i_o will_v bless_v thou_o and_o make_v thy_o name_n great_a genes_n 12._o 2._o to_o bless_v here_o be_v to_o increase_v and_o multiply_v he_o and_o make_v he_o great_a 2._o when_o one_o man_n bless_v another_o it_o signify_v to_o wish_v well_o unto_o they_o and_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o as_o rebekah_n mother_n and_o brother_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v she_o gen._n 24._o 60._o 3._o but_o when_o man_n be_v say_v to_o bless_v god_n it_o signify_v to_o praise_v he_o and_o give_v thanks_n unto_o he_o as_o psal._n 54._o 1._o i_o will_v bless_v the_o lord_n for_o ever_o his_o praise_n shall_v be_v in_o my_o mouth_n continual_o and_o so_o be_v it_o take_v here_o 22._o quest._n vers_fw-la 21._o how_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o change_v time_n and_o season_n 1._o he_o change_v time_n 1._o he_o make_v day_n and_o night_n summer_n and_o winter_n ipse_fw-la est_fw-la primus_fw-la motor_n coelestium_fw-la corporum_fw-la because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n of_o the_o celestial_a body_n which_o do_v rule_v the_o time_n 2._o and_o he_o change_v and_o alter_v the_o time_n either_o according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n ordinary_a as_o in_o distinguish_a day_n month_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o year_n or_o extraordinary_a as_o when_o the_o season_n of_o the_o year_n keep_v not_o their_o kind_n but_o many_o time_n the_o summer_n weather_n be_v change_v into_o the_o winter_n rain_n and_o cold_a and_o the_o winter_n into_o summer_n cal._n and_o he_o alter_v the_o time_n against_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n as_o when_o he_o cause_v the_o sun_n to_o stand_v still_o in_o josuahs_n time_n and_o to_o go_v back_o in_o the_o day_n of_o hezekiah_n pere_n 2._o he_o also_o change_v the_o particular_a season_n both_o of_o the_o air_n and_o weather_n send_v sometime_o heat_n and_o drought_n sometime_o rain_n and_o cold_a polan_n as_o also_o he_o dispose_v of_o the_o age_n and_o year_n of_o man_n life_n in_o general_a as_o man_n age_n be_v shorten_v after_o the_o flood_n and_o in_o particular_a sometime_o shorten_v man_n day_n as_o he_o do_v unto_o moses_n not_o suffer_v he_o to_o live_v to_o see_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n sometime_o prolong_v it_o as_o he_o add_v 15._o year_n to_o hezekiahs_n life_n pere_n 23._o quest._n vers_fw-la 22._o what_o secret_a thing_n the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o discover_v there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o secret_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o discover_v 1._o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n as_o concern_v the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o thing_n a_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o unless_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o from_o god_n 2._o there_o be_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o none_o know_v but_o god_n who_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o he_o 1._o cor._n 2._o 11._o to_o none_o other_o be_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o heart_n know_v but_o only_o unto_o god_n 3._o the_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v great_a secret_n which_o only_o be_v manifest_a unto_o he_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v act_v and_o govern_v both_o past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v pere_n 24._o quest._n how_o light_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v with_o god_n v_o 22._o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v psal._n 18._o 11._o he_o make_v darkness_n his_o secret_a place_n 1._o god_n be_v say_v 1._o to_o be_v light_n in_o himself_o in_o his_o essence_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o god_n but_o most_o pure_a sincere_a clear_a as_o also_o because_o he_o communicate_v of_o this_o light_n unto_o other_o as_o john_n 1._o 9_o he_o be_v the_o
have_v thou_o find_v i_o o_o my_o enemy_n that_o be_v have_v thou_o meet_v with_o i_o quest._n 27._o vers_fw-la 25._o why_o arioch_n name_v daniel_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o captive_n rather_o then_o of_o the_o wiseman_n 1._o some_o think_v he_o name_v he_o of_o judah_n because_o he_o have_v hear_v that_o diverse_a excellent_a prophet_n have_v be_v of_o that_o tribe_n lyran._n pintus_fw-la but_o that_o be_v not_o like_a for_o the_o famous_a prophet_n which_o live_v about_o that_o time_n in_o the_o captivity_n be_v jeremie_n and_o ezekiel_n who_o both_o be_v of_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o priest_n jerem._n 1._o 1._o ezeck_n 1._o 3._o and_o so_o not_o of_o judah_n 2._o therefore_o god_n providence_n rather_o appear_v herein_o that_o as_o daniel_n be_v not_o before_o in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o wiseman_n so_o now_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v count_v among_o they_o that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o dream_n shall_v only_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o not_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o skill_n and_o cunning_n of_o any_o wiseman_n 3._o hugo_n card._n follow_v the_o ordinary_a gloss_n note_v here_o that_o daniel_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o not_o a_o priest_n sicut_fw-la in_o fine_fw-la continet_fw-la fabulae_fw-la belis_n as_o be_v contain_v afterward_o in_o the_o fable_n of_o bel_n etc._n etc._n he_o call_v that_o suppose_a history_n of_o bel_n and_o the_o dragon_n a_o fable_n which_o among_o the_o romanist_n be_v hold_v for_o canonical_a 4._o bullinger_n here_o observe_v well_o in_o that_o the_o lord_n refuse_v the_o great_a wiseman_n of_o babylon_n who_o be_v have_v in_o great_a reputation_n for_o their_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n and_o prefer_v a_o poor_a captive_a infirma_fw-la mundi_fw-la fortissimis_fw-la esse_fw-la robustiora_fw-la that_o the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n be_v strong_a than_o the_o mighty_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1._o cor._n 1._o 27._o god_n have_v choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o mighty_a quest._n 28._o vers_fw-la 26._o how_o the_o king_n be_v say_v to_o answer_v no_o question_n be_v demand_v the_o word_n hhanah_n or_o ghanah_n which_o proper_o signify_v to_o answer_v be_v take_v simple_o for_o to_o speak_v as_o job_n 3._o 2._o job_n curse_v his_o day_n and_o job_n answer_v and_o say_v so_o be_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o math._n 11._o 25._o at_o that_o time_n jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v i_o give_v thou_o thanks_n o_o father_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o no_o man_n ask_v he_o there_o any_o question_n pintus_fw-la so_o mark_v 11._o 13._o when_o jesus_n come_v to_o the_o figtree_n and_o find_v nothing_o but_o leaf_n it_o be_v say_v jesus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d answer_v say_v where_o the_o word_n answer_v be_v superfluos_o add_v as_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n and_o therefore_o the_o syrian_a interpreter_n only_o read_v and_o he_o say_v so_o in_o this_o place_n than_o answer_v the_o king_n and_o say_v the_o word_n ganah_n answer_v be_v add_v ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la as_o we_o say_v more_o than_o need_v see_v beza_n in_o his_o annota_fw-la upon_o that_o place_n quest._n 29._o vers_fw-la 27._o why_o daniel_n deny_v that_o any_o of_o the_o wiseman_n of_o babel_n can_v expound_v this_o dream_n 1._o daniel_n reckon_v up_o 4._o kind_n of_o wiseman_n among_o the_o chaldean_n the_o first_o be_v call_v cachinim_n wizard_n which_o by_o conjecture_n and_o cast_v of_o lot_n do_v guess_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v the_o second_o ashphin_n which_o by_o the_o aspect_n and_o sight_n of_o the_o star_n do_v make_v conjecture_n of_o thing_n the_o three_o chartummim_n which_o consult_v with_o spirit_n of_o these_o three_o see_v before_o qu._n 7._o the_o four_o sort_n be_v call_v gazrin_o of_o the_o word_n gazar_z to_o cut_v and_o they_o be_v they_o which_o do_v open_a and_o cut_v the_o entrail_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o by_o the_o sight_n thereof_o divine_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v polan_n 2._o all_o these_o daniel_n deny_v to_o be_v sufficient_a or_o able_a to_o find_v out_o this_o secret_a and_o that_o for_o these_o cause_n 1._o least_o man_n shall_v arrogate_v unto_o themselves_o divine_a knowledge_n 2._o that_o from_o henceforth_o the_o king_n shall_v not_o exact_v any_o such_o thing_n of_o his_o wiseman_n which_o be_v far_o beyond_o their_o reach_n 3._o that_o he_o may_v stay_v from_o put_v in_o execution_n his_o bloody_a sentence_n against_o the_o wiseman_n jun._n quest._n 30._o vers_fw-la 28._o whether_o god_n only_o be_v the_o revealer_n of_o secret_n and_o thing_n to_o come_v it_o will_v be_v object_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o heathen_a often_o have_v dream_n whereby_o they_o know_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o the_o like_a oracle_n they_o receive_v at_o delphos_n which_o be_v not_o give_v by_o god_n but_o utter_v by_o spirit_n hereunto_o we_o answer_v 1._o that_o many_o of_o those_o oracle_n be_v false_a ambiguous_a and_o doubtful_a as_o those_o which_o be_v give_v to_o croesus_n and_o pyrrhus_n 2._o many_o of_o they_o be_v devise_v either_o by_o they_o who_o affirm_v they_o have_v such_o dream_n or_o by_o the_o writer_n to_o win_v more_o credit_n thereby_o 3._o and_o if_o some_o such_o dream_n and_o oracle_n take_v place_n either_o very_o sue_v of_o they_o do_v hit_v which_o may_v be_v by_o chance_n and_o hap_n hazard_v as_o we_o say_v a_o few_o only_o of_o a_o great_a number_n fall_v out_o or_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o his_o nature_n by_o some_o natural_a sign_n may_v foresee_v the_o effect_n and_o event_n which_o shall_v follow_v or_o he_o may_v foretell_v such_o thing_n as_o by_o god_n permission_n he_o shall_v effect_v himself_o pere_n polan_n 4._o and_o as_o their_o dream_n be_v uncertain_a so_o be_v they_o as_o uncertaine_o interpret_v as_o the_o dream_n which_o darius_n have_v before_o he_o encounter_v with_o alexander_n some_o expound_v to_o signify_v the_o victory_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v against_o he_o some_o give_v a_o contrary_a sense_n as_o q._n curtius_n write_v lib._n 3._o tully_n give_v a_o other_o instance_n how_o one_o go_v to_o the_o olympike_a game_n have_v a_o dream_n that_o he_o be_v turn_v into_o a_o eagle_n one_o wizard_n interpret_v it_o that_o he_o shall_v overcome_v because_o the_o eagle_n be_v superior_a to_o all_o other_o fowl_n a_o other_o turn_v it_o the_o contrary_a way_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o worse_a because_o the_o eagle_n drive_v other_o bird_n before_o she_o come_v last_o of_o all_o so_o than_o the_o gentile_n have_v neither_o any_o divine_a dream_n and_o such_o as_o they_o have_v they_o can_v not_o interpret_v pere_n quest._n 31._o vers_fw-la 28._o what_o daniel_n mean_v by_o the_o latter_a day_n 1._o some_o do_v expound_v it_o of_o all_o the_o time_n from_o thence_o when_o daniel_n expound_v this_o dream_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la consummationem_fw-la secul_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n hierome_n which_o be_v then_o to_o be_v fulfil_v complenda_fw-la modo_fw-la incepta_fw-la but_o already_o begin_v hugo_n but_o nebuchadnezzars_n thought_n extend_v not_o so_o far_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o only_o to_o know_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v after_o he_o and_o according_a to_o his_o thought_n so_o be_v the_o dream_n answerable_a as_o daniel_n show_v vers_n 29._o 2._o some_o by_o the_o latter_a day_n understand_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n extremitas_fw-la dierum_fw-la voco_fw-la christi_fw-la adventus_fw-la the_o extreme_a or_o latter_a day_n be_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o gospel_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o perfection_n and_o renew_n of_o all_o thing_n calvin_n bullinger_n so_o also_o lyranus_fw-la because_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o this_o vision_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n quod_fw-la est_fw-la ultimum_fw-la regnorum_fw-la which_o be_v the_o last_o of_o all_o kingdom_n but_o if_o it_o be_v only_o understand_v of_o christ_n come_n than_o all_o the_o time_n follow_v between_o nebuchadnezzars_n reign_n and_o christ_n come_n shall_v be_v exclude_v 3._o much_o less_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v it_o understand_v de_fw-fr ultima_fw-la mundi_fw-la aetate_fw-la of_o the_o last_o age_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o pintus_fw-la for_o then_o nabuchadnezzar_n shall_v have_v have_v no_o revelation_n of_o the_o time_n which_o shall_v immediate_o follow_v wherebout_fw-fr he_o thought_n be_v most_o of_o all_o trouble_a 4._o wherefore_o by_o this_o word_n acharith_v be_v signify_v posteriora_fw-la tempora_fw-la the_o latter_a time_n pelican_n or_o consequentia_fw-la the_o time_n follow_v polan_n as_o the_o word_n be_v take_v gen._n 49._o 1._o where_o jacob_n declare_v to_o his_o son_n the_o thing_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v
in_o the_o latter_a day_n that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n follow_v not_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o he_o show_v their_o diverse_a lot_n which_o shall_v befall_v they_o when_o they_o come_v into_o canaan_n and_o daniel_n thus_o expound_v himself_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n 29._o thought_n come_v into_o thy_o mind_n what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v hereafter_o jun._n quest._n 32._o vers_fw-la 29._o whether_o nebuchadnezzars_n thought_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o dream_n 1._o there_o be_v four_o cause_n of_o dream_n either_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o humour_n thereof_o which_o procure_v natural_a dream_n as_o choleric_a man_n dream_v of_o fire_n phlegmatic_a of_o water_n and_o such_o like_a or_o else_o the_o affection_n thought_n and_o passion_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o the_o day_n which_o cause_n the_o like_a dream_n in_o the_o night_n and_o these_o be_v humane_a dream_n or_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n sometime_o concur_v with_o man_n thought_n sometime_o without_o they_o whence_o be_v divine_a dream_n of_o which_o kind_n this_o be_v or_o the_o illusion_n of_o satan_n which_o cause_v diabolical_a dream_n 2._o now_o man_n thought_n sometime_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o dream_n as_o the_o preacher_n say_v dream_n come_v through_o the_o multitude_n of_o business_n eccles._n 5._o 2._o but_o such_o dream_n than_o do_v not_o prognosticate_v thing_n to_o come_v but_o be_v a_o representation_n only_o of_o thing_n do_v and_o pass_v ly._n sometime_o they_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o occasion_n only_o and_o preparation_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o the_o dream_n which_o god_n purpose_v to_o send_v as_o josephs_n careful_a thought_n what_o he_o shall_v do_v with_o marie_n who_o he_o suspect_v to_o be_v with_o child_n be_v but_o forerunner_n of_o that_o direction_n which_o god_n give_v he_o by_o a_o dream_n correspondent_a unto_o his_o former_a thought_n matth._n 1._o pere_n so_o polanus_fw-la distinguish_v well_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o dream_n be_v twofold_a either_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o preparative_n cause_n or_o occasion_n rather_o which_o be_v his_o pensive_a thought_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o efficient_a and_o work_a cause_n which_o be_v god_n himself_o quest._n 33._o vers_fw-la 29._o why_o it_o please_v god_n to_o impart_v unto_o nabuchadnezzar_n this_o dream_n vers._n 29._o he_o which_o reveal_v secret_n tell_v thou_o what_o shall_v come_v 1._o god_n send_v this_o dream_n upon_o nebuchaddnezzar_n for_o certain_a particular_a cause_n that_o his_o mind_n may_v thereby_o be_v humble_v when_o he_o shall_v consider_v the_o mutable_a and_o variable_a state_n of_o his_o kingdom_n that_o he_o may_v submit_v and_o subject_v himself_o unto_o god_n 2._o that_o hereby_o his_o heart_n may_v be_v move_v towards_o the_o lord_n people_n not_o to_o tyrannize_v or_o bear_v rule_n cruel_o over_o they_o see_v there_o be_v a_o high_a and_o mighty_a than_o himself_o 3._o other_o general_a cause_n there_o be_v beside_o that_o all_o earthly_a potentate_n shall_v hereby_o be_v admonish_v how_o frail_a and_o of_o what_o short_a continuance_n their_o earthy_a dominion_n be_v 4._o and_o withal_o that_o they_o may_v hereby_o be_v occasion_v to_o look_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a and_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o shall_v shake_v all_o other_o kingdom_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v all_o be_v in_o expectation_n of_o that_o kingdom_n quest._n 34._o vers_fw-la 30._o this_o secret_a be_v not_o show_v i_o for_o my_o wisdom_n whether_o daniel_n by_o any_o natural_a wisdom_n can_v have_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o dream_n it_o be_v evident_a he_o can_v not_o 1._o for_o then_o the_o magician_n and_o chalde_n philosopher_n may_v also_o by_o their_o natural_a skill_n and_o long_a experience_n have_v found_v the_o depth_n thereof_o 2._o as_o the_o dream_n be_v so_o must_v be_v the_o interpretation_n a_o natural_a dream_n may_v be_v expound_v by_o natural_a mean_n but_o this_o hee_v a_o divine_a dream_n send_v of_o god_n must_v be_v interpret_v by_o a_o divine_a instinct_n 3._o this_o dream_n be_v a_o premonstration_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v whereof_o god_n only_o have_v the_o knowledge_n can_v not_o be_v open_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o reveal_v secret_n and_o thing_n to_o come_v 4._o this_o dream_n contain_v a_o signification_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v either_o a_o natural_a or_o voluntary_a sign_n a_o natural_a sign_n it_o can_v not_o not_o be_v for_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o affinity_n between_o it_o and_o the_o thing_n to_o come_v it_o be_v either_o as_o the_o cause_n or_o effect_n or_o have_v some_o other_o agreement_n and_o coherence_n but_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o image_n can_v have_v no_o such_o natural_a affection_n or_o disposition_n to_o or_o with_o the_o conversion_n and_o alteration_n of_o kingdom_n thereby_o fignify_v and_o shadow_v forth_o it_o be_v therefore_o no_o natural_a but_o a_o voluntary_a sign_n not_o appoint_v by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o dispose_v therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v interpret_v but_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o he_o by_o who_o it_o be_v assign_v pere_n quest._n 34._o vers_fw-la 30._o why_o nabuchadnezzar_n can_v not_o understand_v the_o dream_n which_o he_o same_o 1._o augustine_n give_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o adinant_n non_fw-la est_fw-la propheta_fw-la very_fw-la dei_fw-la qui_fw-la oblata_fw-la divinitus_fw-la visa_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o be_v no_o prophet_n of_o the_o true_a god_n which_o see_v either_o with_o his_o body_n or_o with_o that_o part_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o receive_v the_o image_n and_o representation_n of_o bodily_a thing_n yet_o see_v not_o with_o his_o mind_n such_o vision_n as_o be_v effr_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o nabuchadnezzar_n see_v one_o lie_v the_o vision_n but_o have_v no_o prophetical_a gift_n to_o interpret_v it_o can_v not_o understand_v it_o sed_fw-la ad_fw-la interpretandum_fw-la visum_fw-la suum_fw-la aspectum_fw-la quaesivit_fw-la alienum_fw-la but_o he_o use_v a_o other_o spiritual_a sight_n to_o interpret_v his_o vision_n etc._n etc._n augustin_n ibid._n and_o so_o else_o where_o he_o conclude_v 9_o magis_fw-la propheta_fw-la erat_fw-la qui_fw-la interpretabatur_fw-la quod_fw-la alius_fw-la vidisset_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la qui_fw-la vidisset_fw-la and_o so_o he_o he_o be_v rather_o a_o prophet_n that_o can_v interpret_v that_o which_o a_o other_o see_v than_o he_o which_o see_v it_o etc._n etc._n 2._o and_o augustine_n further_a make_v here_o three_o sort_n of_o man_n the_o first_o be_v when_o one_o rerum_fw-la quae_fw-la significatur_fw-la sola_fw-la signa_fw-la vider_n etc._n etc._n do_v only_o see_v the_o sign_n of_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v etc._n etc._n and_o he_o as_o he_o say_v minus_fw-la propheta_fw-la est_fw-la be_v no_o prophet_n the_o second_o be_v when_o one_o solo_fw-la earum_fw-la intellectu_fw-la praeditus_fw-la est_fw-la be_v only_o endue_v with_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o and_o he_o be_v rather_o a_o prophet_n ibid._n such_o a_o one_o be_v joseph_n who_o expound_v pharaoh_n dream_n sed_fw-la maxim_n propheta_fw-la qui_fw-la utroque_fw-la excellit_fw-la but_o he_o be_v most_o of_o all_o a_o prophet_n which_o excel_v in_o both_o as_o deniel_n both_o see_v the_o king_n vision_n and_o dream_n and_o give_v also_o the_o interpretation_n of_o it_o quest._n 36._o vers_fw-la 30._o of_o the_o two_o end_n why_o it_o please_v god_n to_o reveal_v unto_o the_o king_n his_o dream_n 1._o one_o cause_n be_v that_o by_o this_o occasion_n the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n may_v ●●re_v the_o better_o see_v that_o by_o their_o ●_z the_o king_n have_v the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o dream_n the_o word_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v read_v that_o they_o may_v ratify_v or_o make_v know_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o interpretation_n they_o not_o the_o angel_n as_o vatab._n but_o daniel_n and_o his_o fellow_n which_o join_v in_o prayer_n some_o read_v that_o the_o interpretation_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a as_o the_o latin_a who_o lyranus_fw-la follow_v some_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o first_o person_n ut_fw-la exponerem_fw-la that_o i_o may_v expound_v or_o declare_v to_o the_o king_n the_o interpretation_n calvin_n but_o the_o word_n be_v iehoreghun_v that_o they_o may_v notify_v this_o be_v the_o first_o reason_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o jew_n may_v receive_v more_o favour_n unto_o who_o god_n reveal_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o vision_n 2._o the_o other_o cause_n be_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o king_n himself_o that_o he_o may_v know_v and_o understand_v the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n both_o these_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n give_v unto_o daniel_n both_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o dream_n and_o the_o understanding_n thereof_o be_v express_v by_o augustine_n hoc_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la
four_o kingdom_n and_o the_o five_o can_v stand_v together_o 6._o argum._n the_o roman_a empire_n yet_o in_o some_o sort_n continue_v therefore_o this_o five_o be_v not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o must_v not_o be_v raise_v until_o the_o other_o be_v destroy_v contra._n the_o roman_a monarchy_n be_v long_o since_o dissolve_v and_o there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o a_o image_n and_o shadow_n thereof_o therefore_o this_o reason_n conclude_v not_o quest._n 58._o that_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o spiritual_a no_o temporal_a kingdom_n 1._o some_o think_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o temporal_a king_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n descend_v lineal_o unto_o he_o by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n which_o they_o will_v further_o confirm_v by_o that_o pprophecy_n of_o jaacob_n gen._n 49._o 10._o the_o sceptre_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o judah_n till_o shilob_v come_v etc._n etc._n whence_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n shall_v be_v restore_v by_o the_o messiah_n contra._n 1._o it_o can_v not_o be_v show_v that_o christ_n descend_v by_o such_o a_o right_a line_n as_o that_o the_o kingdom_n come_v unto_o he_o by_o lineal_a descent_n for_o the_o line_n which_o matthew_n and_o luke_n set_v down_o be_v of_o joseph_n not_o of_o marry_o which_o show_v that_o they_o be_v both_o of_o the_o same_o tribe_n but_o that_o lineal_a descent_n will_v derive_v the_o temporal_a kingdom_n rather_o to_o joseph_n then_o to_o marie_n 2._o the_o contrary_a rather_o be_v infer_v upon_o that_o pprophecy_n that_o the_o sceptre_n shall_v then_o and_o not_o before_o depart_v from_o judah_n when_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v and_o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v expectatio_fw-la judaeorum_n the_o expectation_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o the_o latin_a translator_n read_v or_o the_o people_n or_o nation_n not_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v gather_v unto_o he_o pintus_fw-la 2._o now_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v no_o temporal_a but_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n neither_o that_o he_o have_v any_o temporal_a kingdom_n by_o succession_n from_o david_n it_o may_v thus_o appear_v 1._o jehoiachin_n the_o last_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n beside_o zedekiah_n who_o son_n be_v kill_v before_o his_o face_n have_v none_o of_o his_o seed_n to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n after_o he_o jeremie_n 22._o 30._o but_o if_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v lineal_o derive_v from_o david_n it_o must_v be_v count_v from_o he_o 2._o christ_n refuse_v to_o be_v make_v a_o king_n and_o when_o he_o perceive_v the_o people_n have_v such_o a_o intent_n he_o convey_v himself_o from_o among_o they_o joh._n 6._o 15._o he_o likewise_o refuse_v to_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n as_o to_o be_v a_o judge_n in_o civil_a cause_n luk._n 12._o 14._o 3._o no_o temporal_a kingdom_n be_v eternal_a but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v eternal_a therefore_o it_o be_v no_o temporal_a kingdom_n 4._o what_o manner_n of_o kingdom_n christ_n be_v the_o prophet_n zacharie_n show_v behold_v thy_o king_n come_v unto_o thou_o etc._n etc._n poor_a and_o ride_v upon_o a_o ass_n if_o christ_n be_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n where_o be_v the_o pomp_n riches_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 5._o as_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v so_o be_v the_o oil_n wherewith_o he_o be_v anoint_v and_o the_o sword_n wherewith_o he_o be_v gird_v but_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o spiritual_a oil_n and_o the_o sword_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v also_o spiritual_a psal._n 45._o 3._o 7._o therefore_o so_o be_v his_o kingdom_n pintus_fw-la 59_o quest._n v_o 44._o in_o the_o day_n of_o what_o king_n christ_n kingdom_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o 1._o the_o latin_a interpreter_n read_v in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o kingdom_n which_o lyran._n pint._n with_o other_o understand_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o be_v call_v kingdom_n in_o the_o plural_a quia_fw-la multa_fw-la regna_fw-la continebat_fw-la sub_fw-la se_fw-la because_o it_o contain_v many_o kingdom_n under_o it_o and_o they_o give_v this_o sense_n that_o while_o the_o roman_a monarchy_n yet_o continue_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v begin_v pappus_n 2._o bullinger_n somewhat_o diversl_o by_o these_o king_n understandeth_v ●●ivers_a prince_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o augustus_n and_o antonius_n between_o who_o herod_n go_v unto_o the_o capitol_n be_v by_o they_o confirm_v in_o his_o kingdom_n contra._n but_o that_o these_o time_n can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n at_o all_o hence_o it_o be_v evident_a because_o this_o 5._o kingdom_n must_v be_v raise_v up_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o other_o now_o the_o roman_a empire_n most_o of_o all_o flourish_v when_o christ_n be_v bear_v it_o be_v not_o then_o the_o four_o kingdom_n here_o speak_v of_o see_v other_o argument_n against_o this_o opinion_n question_n 49._o 3._o the_o jew_n do_v understand_v this_o four_o kingdom_n of_o the_o turkish_a dominion_n &_o they_o confound_v the_o macedonian_a and_o roman_a empire_n together_o make_v they_o both_o one_o because_o they_o say_v the_o roman_n have_v their_o original_n from_o the_o grecian_n and_o this_o be_v their_o devise_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v force_v to_o find_v the_o beginning_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n under_o the_o four_o monarchy_n of_o the_o roman_n contra._n 1._o the_o four_o kingdom_n can_v be_v the_o turkish_a segnorie_n which_o come_v 600._o year_n at_o the_o least_o after_o the_o other_o 3._o kingdom_n be_v dissolve_v but_o by_o daniel_n description_n the_o four_o kingdom_n must_v follow_v immediate_o upon_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o other_o 2._o though_o the_o roman_n have_v their_o beginning_n from_o troy_n in_o asia_n minor_fw-la yet_o that_o be_v destroy_v a_o 1000_o year_n well_o nigh_o before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o first_o monarchy_n therefore_o the_o roman_n can_v not_o then_o be_v count_v one_o kingdom_n with_o the_o grecian_n 3._o likewise_o the_o turk_n come_v from_o the_o mount_n caspian_a and_o out_o of_o the_o great_a asia_n then_o by_o this_o reason_n they_o may_v as_o well_o confound_v the_o turkish_a government_n with_o the_o babylonian_a or_o persian_a monarchy_n which_o have_v their_o chief_a dominion_n in_o the_o great_a asia_n 3._o therefore_o the_o time_n of_o these_o king_n must_v be_v refer_v unto_o the_o last_o king_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n which_o consist_v of_o syria_n and_o egypt_n as_o the_o two_o leg_n thereof_o as_o be_v before_o show_v quest_n 50._o and_o so_o hugo_n very_o well_o expound_v in_o diebus_fw-la unius_fw-la ex_fw-la illis_fw-la in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o king_n or_o kingdom_n that_o be_v one_o of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o they_o as_o the_o word_n be_v take_v ezech._n 7._o 12._o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o be_v the_o end_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n gloss_n ordinar_n his_o regnis_fw-la pracurrentibus_fw-la these_o kingdom_n go_v before_o as_o be_v forerunner_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o prophesy_v of_o and_o come_v this_o be_v agree_v upon_o that_o this_o time_n be_v the_o end_n of_o these_o kingdom_n yet_o there_o be_v this_o doubt_n junius_n seem_v to_o understand_v this_o king_n to_o be_v herod_n who_o be_v a_o arabian_a and_o so_o of_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n who_o usurp_v the_o kigdome_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o in_o his_o time_n christ_n come_v but_o this_o can_v be_v so_o fit_a to_o find_v this_o forth_o kingdom_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o judea_n it_o must_v be_v a_o foreign_a kingdom_n that_o be_v cruel_a and_o yron-like_a towards_o that_o nation_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o syria_n be_v dissolve_v a_o good_a while_n before_o by_o pompey_n before_o herod_n be_v king_n therefore_o i_o rather_o consent_v to_o they_o which_o understand_v this_o time_n to_o be_v the_o end_n of_o ptolemy_n house_n and_o race_n for_o until_o herod_n the_o house_n of_o ptolemy_n continue_v for_o antony_n who_o confirm_v herod_n in_o his_o kingdom_n marry_v cleoptra_n the_o daughter_n and_o heir_n of_o ptolemy_n piper_n 60._o quest._n how_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v say_v to_o destroy_v other_o kingdom_n 1._o see_v that_o three_o of_o these_o monarchy_n and_o kingdom_n be_v destroy_v before_o christ_n birth_n how_o be_v christ_n kingdom_n say_v to_o destroy_v they_o and_o see_v kingdom_n be_v set_v up_o by_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n 13._o how_o be_v christ_n say_v to_o destroy_v that_o which_o he_o set_v up_o answ._n 1._o though_o those_o kingdom_n be_v in_o act_n dissolve_v before_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o because_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v everlasting_a and_o begin_v not_o with_o his_o incarnation_n those_o kingdom_n be_v destroy_v by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n
command_v that_o they_o shall_v bring_v shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n then_o these_o man_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o king_n be_v hasty_o bring_v l._n but_o that_o word_n be_v add_v 14._o and_o nabuchadnezzar_n speak_v answer_v c._o and_o say_v unto_o they_o of_o set_a purpose_n i._o p._n better_a then_o what_o disorder_n g._n or_o desolation_n a._n or_o be_v it_o true_a l._n v._o b._n s._n the_o word_n tzedah_fw-mi as_o r._n david_n signify_v to_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o move_v a_o question_n will_v not_o you_o worship_v my_o god_n nor_o bow_n a._n p._n worship_n caeter_fw-la unto_o the_o image_n of_o gold_n which_o i_o have_v set_v up_o 15._o now_o if_o you_o be_v ready_a i._n l._n v._o be_v ready_a b._n be_v you_o ready_a g._n behold_v you_o be_v ready_a a._n but_o cheen_n here_o must_v signify_v if_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o other_o clause_n of_o the_o verse_n if_o you_o worship_v not_o etc._n etc._n that_o when_o you_o hear_v the_o sound_n of_o cornet_n pipe_n harp_n sackbut_n psalterie_n and_o dulcimer_n or_o symphony_n you_o fall_v down_o and_o bow_v unto_o the_o image_n which_o i_o have_v make_v it_o be_v well_o this_o must_v be_v add_v to_o make_v the_o sense_n full_a but_o if_o you_o will_v not_o bow_v down_o in_o the_o same_o hour_n shall_v you_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o mid_n of_o a_o hot_a fiery_a furnace_n for_o who_o be_v that_o god_n that_o can_v deliver_v you_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n 16._o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o the_o king_n o_o nebuchadnezzer_n we_o be_v not_o careful_a i._n v._o a._n it_o behoove_v not_o us._n l._n p._n the_o word_n cashach_n signify_v both_o but_o it_o be_v here_o most_o proper_a in_o the_o first_o sense_n as_o r._n david_n and_o r._n shelemoh_n here_o take_v it_o to_o answer_v thou_o in_o this_o matter_n 17._o either_o it_o will_v be_v our_o god_n who_o we_o worship_v be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o the_o hot_a fiery_a furnace_n and_o out_o of_o thy_o hand_n o_o king_n will_v deliver_v we_o better_a then_o behold_v our_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o the_o furnace_n and_o to_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o thy_o hand_n l._n for_o the_o latter_a word_n be_v in_o the_o future_a tense_n will_v deliver_v or_o then_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o g._n b._n for_o they_o be_v not_o assure_v of_o present_a deliverance_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n but_o if_o not_o or_o whether_o god_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o v._o or_o not_o v._o for_o this_o have_v be_v to_o doubt_v of_o god_n power_n if_o it_o will_v be_v polan_n that_o be_v that_o we_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o furnace_n but_o this_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o their_o deliverance_n as_o the_o other_o opposite_a part_n be_v but_o if_o not_o we_o resolve_v then_o upon_o the_o first_o interpretation_n the_o word_n be_v be_v divide_v by_o the_o distinction_n rebia_n from_o the_o sentence_n follow_v and_o so_o can_v be_v join_v with_o god_n 18._o either_o it_o will_v not_o yet_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o thou_o o_o king_n that_o we_o will_v not_o worship_v thy_o god_n nor_o bow_v unto_o the_o golden_a image_n which_o thou_o have_v set_v up_o 19_o then_o be_v nebuchadnezzer_n fill_v with_o rage_n and_o the_o form_n of_o his_o visage_n g._n the_o image_n of_o his_o face_n c._n i._n the_o countenance_n of_o his_o face_n b._n be_v change_v upon_o b._n l._n or_o against_o v._o g._n i._o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n and_o he_o answer_v give_v charge_n c._n i._o charge_v and_o command_v g._n b._n command_v l._n that_o they_o shall_v heat_v the_o furnace_n at_o once_o seven_o time_n more_o than_o it_o be_v wont_a seem_v good_a c._n to_o be_v heat_n 20._o and_o to_o the_o most_o valiant_a man_n of_o strength_n which_o be_v in_o his_o army_n he_o give_v charge_n to_o bind_v shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n to_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o hot_a fiery_a furnace_n 21._o so_o these_o man_n be_v bind_v in_o their_o coat_n breach_n l._n their_o bonnet_n l._n their_o hose_n v._o i._n g._n b._n and_o their_o cloak_n g._n i._o their_o shoe_n l._n bonnet_n v._o b._n with_o their_o other_o garment_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o hot_a fiery_a furnace_n see_v the_o diverse_a reading_n quest_n 25._o follow_v 22._o therefore_o because_o the_o king_n word_n be_v straight_o or_o urgent_a c._o that_o the_o furnace_n shall_v be_v exceed_o hot_a the_o flame_n spark_n i._o a._n of_o the_o fire_n slay_v those_o man_n which_o have_v put_v in_o b._n thrust_v in_o i._o or_o send_v in_o l._n not_o bring_v forth_o g._n v._o the_o word_n proper_o signify_v to_o cause_n to_o ascend_v they_o have_v bring_v they_o up_o to_o cast_v they_o down_o into_o the_o furnace_n pel._n shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n 23._o and_o these_o three_o man_n shadrach_n meshach_n &_o abednego_n fall_v down_o into_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o hot_a fiery_a furnace_n bind_v 24._o then_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o king_n be_v astonish_v and_o rise_v up_o in_o haste_n with_o a_o trouble_a mind_n or_o be_v perplex_v i._o the_o word_n behal_o signify_v both_o haste_n and_o perplexity_n but_o the_o first_o rather_o both_o because_o his_o perplexity_n be_v express_v in_o the_o former_a word_n and_o the_o preposition_n ●eth_n more_o proper_o signify_v in_o then_o with_o and_o speak_v and_o say_v unto_o his_o counsellor_n or_o governor_n i._o or_o noble_n i._n v._o do_v we_o not_o cast_v three_o man_n bind_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o fire_n who_o answer_v and_o say_v to_o the_o king_n true_a o_o king_n true_o o_o king_n l._n v._o 25._o he_o answer_v and_o say_v lo_o i_o see_v four_o man_n loose_a walk_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o fire_n and_o they_o have_v no_o hurt_n no_o corruption_n c._o and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o four_o be_v like_o the_o son_n of_o god_n l._n i._o b._n g._n of_o the_o god_n c._n v._n 26._o then_o the_o king_n nabuchadnezzar_n come_v near_o to_o the_o mouth_n g._n b._n the_o door_n c._n cum_fw-la caeter_fw-la of_o the_o hot_a fiery_a furnace_n and_o speak_v and_o say_v shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a god_n go_v forth_o and_o come_v hither_o then_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o fire_n 27._o then_o the_o noble_n prince_n and_o duke_n and_o the_o king_n counsellor_n mighty_a one_o l._n governor_n i._o come_v together_o to_o see_v these_o man_n because_o the_o fire_n have_v no_o power_n over_o their_o body_n for_o not_o a_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n be_v burn_v neither_o be_v their_o coat_n change_v not_o any_o smell_n of_o fire_n come_v pass_v c._o upon_o they_o 28._o wherefore_o nabuchadnezzar_n speak_v and_o say_v bless_a be_v the_o god_n of_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n who_o have_v send_v his_o angel_n and_o deliver_v his_o servant_n that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o have_v alter_v the_o king_n commandment_n and_o yield_v their_o body_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o serve_v nor_o bow_n unto_o any_o god_n save_v their_o own_o god_n 29._o therefore_o i_o set_v forth_o a_o decree_n that_o every_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n which_o shall_v speak_v any_o blasphemy_n error_n c._o against_o the_o god_n of_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n shall_v be_v draw_v in_o piece_n shall_v perish_v l._n and_o his_o house_n be_v make_v a_o iake_n be_v va_v l._n because_o there_o be_v not_o any_o other_o god_n there_o be_v no_o god_n b._n g._n but_o here_o the_o word_n other_o be_v omit_v which_o can_v deliver_v after_o this_o sort_n 30._o then_o the_o king_n advance_v cause_v to_o prosper_v c._o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n in_o the_o province_n of_o babel_n 1._o the_o question_n discuss_v quest._n 1._o at_o what_o time_n nabuchadnezzar_n set_v up_o this_o great_a image_n 1._o some_o think_v that_o this_o be_v do_v not_o long_o after_o the_o former_a dream_n which_o nabuchadnezzar_n have_v as_o the_o rabbin_n that_o imagine_v this_o image_n to_o be_v set_v up_o by_o the_o king_n as_o a_o amulet_n or_o defence_n to_o prevent_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o dream_n ex_fw-la calvin_n but_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o the_o great_a impression_n which_o that_o vision_n leave_v behind_o it_o in_o nebuchadnezzars_n mind_n can_v be_v so_o soon_o extinguish_v 2._o theodoret_n and_o chrysostome_n in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o three_o child_n follow_v some_o greek_a copy_n read_v that_o this_o image_n be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o 18._o year_n of_o nebuchadnezzars_n reign_n but_o than_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v make_v before_o the_o destruction_n and_o desolation_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v not_o like_a for_o when_o nabuchadnezzar_n have_v
gentile_n as_o origen_n as_o suidas_n write_v be_v excommunicate_a of_o the_o church_n for_o hold_v a_o little_a incense_n in_o his_o hand_n before_o a_o idol_n 5._o the_o romanist_n will_v not_o come_v at_o our_o church_n and_o service_n where_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o external_a object_n that_o may_v offend_v they_o therefore_o much_o less_o shall_v protestant_n show_v such_o weakness_n to_o assemble_v with_o they_o in_o their_o idolatrous_a temple_n which_o lie_v so_o many_o stumble_a block_n before_o the_o eye_n 13._o quest._n of_o the_o malicious_a accusation_n of_o the_o chaldee_n against_o the_o jew_n 1._o the_o malicious_a chaldee_n be_v so_o incense_v against_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n that_o refuse_v to_o worship_v the_o image_n that_o they_o can_v not_o stay_v at_o all_o but_o present_o at_o the_o same_o instant_n they_o make_v complaint_n of_o they_o 2._o they_o bend_v their_o accusation_n not_o only_o against_o those_o three_o who_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v offender_n but_o against_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n v_o 8._o they_o grievous_o accuse_v the_o jew_n 3._o they_o by_o flatter_a speech_n insinuate_v themselves_o to_o the_o king_n that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o hear_v o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o v_o 9_o 4._o then_o they_o subtle_o seek_v to_o bring_v their_o person_n into_o disgrace_n and_o hatred_n 1._o by_o their_o nation_n and_o country_n they_o be_v jew_n the_o king_n captive_n and_o vassal_n 2._o by_o their_o unthankfulnes_n for_o the_o benefit_n which_o the_o king_n have_v bestow_v upon_o they_o who_o have_v make_v they_o governor_n and_o chief_a officer_n bull_v 3._o by_o their_o apostasy_n that_o be_v call_v by_o babylonian_a name_n shadrach_n meshach_n abednego_n and_o so_o incorporate_v into_o that_o nation_n yet_o be_v of_o a_o diverse_a religion_n and_o usage_n jun._n 5._o then_o follow_v the_o crime_n which_o they_o object_n against_o they_o which_o be_v threefold_a 1._o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n commandment_n and_o decree_n 2._o irreligion_n in_o not_o worship_v the_o king_n god_n 3._o mutiny_n and_o sedition_n in_o be_v singular_a among_o the_o rest_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o king_n image_n 14._o quest._n why_o they_o say_v in_o the_o plural_a they_o will_v not_o serve_v thy_o god_n v_o 12._o when_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o image_n lyranus_fw-la think_v that_o this_o image_n be_v call_v in_o the_o plural_a god_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o use_v to_o call_v a_o idol_n so_o though_o it_o be_v but_o one_o as_o they_o say_v of_o the_o golden_a calf_n exod_n 32._o these_o be_v thy_o god_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o text_n that_o by_o god_n they_o mean_v not_o the_o image_n because_o they_o complain_v of_o 2._o thing_n they_o will_v not_o serve_v thy_o god_n nor_o worship_v the_o image_n 2._o the_o ordi_fw-la gloss_n which_o hugo_n follow_v so_o also_o pintus_fw-la think_v that_o the_o god_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v diverse_a from_o the_o image_n for_o this_o he_o set_v up_o for_o himself_o to_o be_v worship_v in_o it_o but_o his_o god_n he_o worship_v himself_o but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o here_o two_o such_o distinct_a thing_n it_o appear_v because_o the_o king_n decree_n be_v only_a that_o they_o shall_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_v the_o image_n which_o they_o transgress_v be_v say_v therein_o also_o to_o have_v refuse_v to_o serve_v the_o king_n god_n 3._o wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o image_n be_v set_v up_o by_o the_o king_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o god_n calvin_n which_o be_v so_o call_v in_o the_o plural_a because_o they_o worship_v many_o god_n so_o that_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o action_n in_o refuse_v to_o bow_v unto_o the_o image_n they_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v contemner_n also_o of_o the_o king_n god_n 15._o quest._n why_o these_o three_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego_n be_v only_o accuse_v 1._o it_o may_v seem_v that_o the_o principal_a and_o chief_a man_n be_v only_o or_o especial_o call_v and_o that_o the_o vulgar_a and_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n be_v not_o all_o present_a or_o at_o the_o least_o the_o principal_a man_n be_v most_o mark_v and_o observe_v who_o example_n the_o rest_n may_v follow_v pere_n but_o it_o seem_v by_o their_o general_a accusation_n of_o the_o jew_n v_o 8._o that_o there_o be_v more_o jew_n present_v then_o these_o three_o 2._o it_o may_v be_v also_o suppose_v that_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n which_o be_v present_a do_v for_o fear_n do_v as_o the_o rest_n do_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o complain_v of_o perer._n it_o be_v very_o like_a indeed_o that_o many_o jew_n do_v fall_v away_o in_o time_n of_o captivity_n to_o worship_v the_o chaldean_a image_n because_o many_o of_o they_o have_v be_v idolater_n in_o their_o own_o country_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v carry_v into_o captivity_n but_o that_o some_o other_o of_o the_o jew_n beside_o these_o three_o refuse_v to_o fall_v down_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o general_a accusation_n against_o the_o jew_n but_o principal_o against_o these_o three_o 3._o wherefore_o this_o be_v like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o these_o three_o be_v single_v out_o because_o they_o be_v advance_v to_o honourable_a place_n of_o government_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v envy_v and_o malign_v of_o the_o chaldee_n and_o this_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o their_o manner_n of_o accusation_n v_o 12._o wherein_o they_o special_o urge_v that_o point_n that_o the_o king_n have_v set_v they_o over_o the_o province_n of_o babel_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o eyesore_n and_o a_o grief_n unto_o they_o why_o daniel_n be_v not_o accuse_v with_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o absence_n as_o be_v show_v before_o quest_n 4._o 16._o quest._n what_o age_n these_o three_o be_v of_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o king_n 1._o chrysostome_n think_v that_o these_o three_o be_v infantili_fw-la aetate_fw-la but_o as_o infant_n and_o child_n when_o this_o be_v do_v homil_n de_fw-fr trib_o pveris_fw-la augustine_n also_o hom_n 24._o call_v they_o pueros_fw-la child_n but_o this_o be_v not_o like_a that_o the_o king_n will_v set_v child_n in_o the_o place_n of_o government_n for_o before_o this_o at_o daniel_n request_n they_o be_v make_v governor_n over_o the_o province_n of_o babel_n c._n 2._o 49._o 2._o theodoret_n guess_v they_o be_v young_a man_n in_o aetatis_fw-la veer_fw-la in_o the_o spring_n and_o as_o we_o say_v in_o the_o flower_n of_o their_o age_n 3._o pererius_n think_v they_o can_v not_o be_v less_o than_o 35._o year_n of_o age_n for_o he_o suppose_v they_o may_v be_v 10._o year_n old_a when_o they_o go_v into_o captivity_n and_o in_o the_o 25._o year_n of_o nabuchadnezzer_n he_o have_v that_o dream_n of_o the_o image_n but_o though_o pererius_n opinion_n be_v probable_a for_o their_o age_n yet_o his_o ground_n be_v uncertain_a for_o the_o second_o year_n mention_v c._n 2._o 1._o be_v not_o the_o 25._o but_o the_o 5._o year_n of_o nabuchadnezzers_n reign_n as_o be_v show_v c._n 2._o qu._n 1._o 4._o but_o pererius_n labour_v to_o clear_v this_o point_n because_o in_o their_o missal_n they_o be_v call_v the_o three_o child_n either_o for_o that_o they_o be_v child_n at_o their_o first_o go_v into_o captivity_n or_o they_o be_v so_o call_v according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n that_o young_a man_n and_o they_o which_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n be_v so_o call_v pveri_fw-la as_o josua_n exod._n 31._o be_v then_o above_o 40._o year_n old_a be_v call_v pver_fw-la the_o lad_n or_o servant_n of_o moses_n contra._n 1._o the_o word_n pver_fw-la when_o it_o be_v so_o apply_v be_v refer_v rather_o to_o their_o ministry_n and_o service_n than_o age_n 2._o we_o do_v not_o stand_v upon_o it_o how_o they_o be_v call_v in_o their_o missal_n it_o suffice_v we_o that_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v not_o call_v child_n but_o gubhraia_v man_n v_o 23._o of_o the_o word_n gabbar_a to_o be_v strong_a they_o be_v then_o man_n of_o perfect_a age_n and_o strength_n 17._o quest._n why_o daniel_n make_v not_o intercession_n to_o the_o king_n for_o his_o three_o friend_n 1._o they_o which_o think_v daniel_n be_v present_a and_o that_o he_o either_o stand_v by_o the_o king_n who_o do_v not_o worship_v his_o own_o image_n as_o gloss_n ordin_fw-fr hugo_n or_o that_o they_o do_v forbear_v to_o accuse_v he_o because_o he_o be_v in_o great_a grace_n and_o favour_n with_o the_o king_n polan_n which_o conceit_n see_v refute_v before_o quest_n 4._o those_o which_o affirm_v daniel_n to_o be_v present_a consequent_o must_v hold_v that_o daniel_n be_v silent_a and_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o behalf_n
of_o his_o friend_n and_o lyranus_fw-la say_v vidit_fw-la regem_fw-la obstinatum_fw-la in_o malicia_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la tacuit_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o see_v the_o king_n settle_v and_o obstinate_a in_o his_o malice_n and_o therefore_o hold_v his_o peace_n but_o daniel_n have_v offend_v much_o if_o be_v present_a he_o shall_v by_o his_o silence_n and_o connivance_n have_v betray_v these_o innocent_n as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v prou._n 24._o 11._o will_v thou_o not_o preserve_v they_o that_o be_v lead_v to_o be_v slay_v 2._o pererius_n think_v that_o daniel_n be_v a_o great_a prophet_n may_v foresee_v that_o god_n will_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o this_o danger_n by_o some_o great_a miracle_n that_o thereby_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v be_v set_v forth_o as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n suffer_v lazarus_n to_o die_v that_o he_o may_v get_v great_a glory_n by_o raise_v he_o up_o again_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n contra._n 1._o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o daniel_n the_o master_n and_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o well_o match_v together_o christ_n have_v all_o power_n and_o knowledge_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v not_o daniel_n 2._o he_o know_v not_o of_o his_o deliverance_n from_o the_o lion_n himself_o when_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o their_o den_n for_o than_o it_o have_v be_v no_o trial_n of_o he_o say_v if_o he_o have_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v deliver_v much_o less_o be_v it_o like_v that_o he_o foresee_v the_o miraculous_a deliverance_n of_o these_o 3._o therefore_o daniel_n be_v excuse_v by_o his_o absence_n and_o ignorance_n he_o neither_o be_v present_a and_o so_o consequent_o be_v ignorant_a of_o all_o that_o now_o happen_v be_v do_v speedy_o and_o in_o haste_n see_v before_o qu._n 4._o 18._o quest._n of_o nabuchadnezzers_n speech_n unto_o those_o three_o bring_v before_o he_o 1._o the_o equity_n of_o the_o king_n herein_o deserve_v commendation_n that_o will_v not_o present_o give_v sentence_n against_o these_o person_n till_o he_o have_v hear_v their_o defence_n as_o it_o be_v the_o commendable_a custom_n of_o the_o roman_n not_o to_o deliver_v any_o unto_o death_n before_o he_o that_o be_v accuse_v have_v place_n to_o defend_v himself_o act._n 25._o 16._o bull_v 2._o but_o herein_o appear_v the_o wilful_a blindness_n of_o the_o king_n that_o be_v seduce_v to_o set_v up_o such_o a_o abominable_a idol_n he_o proceed_v to_o maintain_v it_o with_o cruelty_n pelican_n 3._o he_o do_v first_o seek_v to_o win_v they_o by_o gentle_a speech_n as_o though_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a that_o they_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n or_o if_o they_o do_v it_o be_v of_o some_o oversight_n rather_o than_o of_o purpose_n which_o he_o be_v content_a to_o pardon_v if_o now_o they_o will_v worship_v the_o image_n but_o beside_o these_o fair_a speech_n he_o add_v also_o threaten_v bull_v 4._o he_o peremptory_o enjoin_v obedience_n to_o his_o decree_n not_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v dispute_v or_o call_v into_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v just_a or_o lawful_a but_o it_o be_v his_o will_n so_o to_o be_v calv._n 5._o and_o at_o the_o last_o he_o end_v with_o blasphemy_n extenuate_v the_o power_n of_o that_o great_a god_n who_o before_o he_o have_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o god_n c._n 2._o 47._o so_o rabsakeh_n say_v to_o hezekiah_n that_o the_o lord_n can_v not_o deliver_v jerusalem_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n 2._o king_n 18._o 35._o 19_o quest._n of_o the_o religious_a and_o resolute_a answer_n of_o these_o three_o convent_v before_o the_o king_n they_o answer_v with_o godly_a resolution_n and_o courage_n to_o every_o part_n of_o the_o king_n speech_n 1._o whereas_o the_o king_n first_o insinuate_v himself_o as_o though_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o will_v do_v such_o a_o thing_n and_o thereby_o suggest_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v better_o advise_v which_o kind_n of_o humane_a and_o favourable_a question_v suetonius_n note_v to_o have_v be_v much_o use_v by_o augustus_n who_o in_o examine_v those_o which_o be_v guilty_a will_v seem_v as_o though_o he_o believe_v not_o any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o to_o this_o uncertentie_n in_o the_o king_n demand_n they_o answer_v resolute_o that_o they_o need_v no_o consultation_n in_o that_o matter_n they_o have_v their_o answer_n ready_a and_o be_v determine_v both_o what_o to_o say_v and_o do_v to_o answer_v and_o suffer_v we_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o answer_v thou_o in_o this_o matter_n 2._o to_o the_o king_n blasphemy_n that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n they_o reply_v that_o their_o god_n who_o they_o serve_v be_v able_a to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n 3._o touch_v the_o king_n threaten_v of_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n they_o answer_v in_o effect_n that_o it_o do_v not_o move_v they_o they_o fear_v it_o not_o though_o their_o god_n for_o some_o cause_n know_v to_o himself_o shall_v leave_v they_o in_o his_o hand_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n 4._o and_o as_o the_o king_n will_v admit_v no_o discuss_n of_o his_o decree_n but_o will_v have_v it_o absolute_o obey_v so_o they_o can_v not_o be_v remove_v from_o their_o religion_n neither_o desire_a to_o have_v the_o same_o discuss_v or_o sift_v they_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n consent_n to_o worship_v the_o image_n 20._o quest._n why_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o always_o deliver_v his_o out_o of_o temporal_a danger_n v_o 18._o but_o if_o not_o these_o valiant_a servant_n of_o god_n be_v certain_a of_o god_n favour_n that_o he_o will_v assist_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o suffer_v for_o his_o glory_n but_o they_o can_v not_o certain_o promise_v themselves_o temporal_a deliverance_n wherein_o the_o lord_n always_o show_v not_o his_o power_n for_o these_o reason_n 1._o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v continual_o by_o some_o miraculous_a deliverance_n rid_v his_o child_n out_o of_o danger_n then_o will_v not_o the_o miracle_n be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o neither_o god_n glory_n nor_o power_n therein_o so_o much_o magnify_v nor_o man_n thereat_o so_o much_o move_v perer._n 2._o god_n suffer_v his_o child_n to_o fall_v into_o temporal_a danger_n for_o the_o trial_n and_o probation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o patience_n 3._o thereby_o also_o god_n do_v chastise_v his_o servant_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o more_o effectual_a repentance_n pap_n 4._o and_o the_o lord_n permit_v his_o child_n to_o be_v temporal_o try_v invisibiliter_fw-la eos_fw-la ad_fw-la gloriam_fw-la transferendo_fw-la to_o bring_v they_o invisible_o unto_o everlasting_a glory_n lyran._n ex_fw-la augustin_n 21._o quest._n why_o they_o be_v so_o resolute_a not_o to_o worship_v the_o golden_a image_n 1._o the_o godly_a hebrew_n be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o often_o they_o be_v charge_v by_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n not_o to_o bow_v unto_o or_o worship_n image_n as_o exod._n 20._o in_o the_o second_o commandment_n deut._n c._n 4._o and_o c._n 27._o isa._n 44._o and_o jerem._n 10._o and_o in_o many_o place_n beside_o that_o no_o one_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v more_o straight_o give_v they_o in_o charge_n 2._o they_o have_v the_o example_n of_o the_o godly_a patriarch_n and_o king_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n who_o have_v a_o perfect_a detestation_n of_o idol_n as_o jaacob_n burn_v all_o the_o image_n in_o his_o house_n under_o a_o oak_n gen._n 35._o hezekiah_n pull_v down_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o abuse_v it_o to_o idolatry_n 3._o yea_o in_o the_o most_o corrupt_a time_n after_o their_o return_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n the_o jew_n abhor_a image_n for_o when_o pilatus_n and_o petronius_n the_o precedent_n of_o jewrie_n have_v secret_o bring_v the_o image_n of_o tiberius_n and_o caligula_n into_o the_o city_n to_o be_v worship_v of_o the_o jew_n they_o manful_o resist_v offer_v their_o neck_n and_o life_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v contrary_a to_o their_o law_n worship_v any_o image_n joseph_n lib._n 18._o antiquit_n c._n 4._o &_o 10._o who_o further_o write_v l._n 2._o cont_n appia_n that_o when_o alexander_n the_o great_a will_v have_v repair_v the_o temple_n and_o sepulchre_n of_o bel_n the_o chaldean_n god_n at_o babylon_n and_o therein_o use_v the_o help_n of_o the_o jew_n they_o utter_o refuse_v 4._o therefore_o that_o be_v a_o most_o malicious_a lie_v report_v by_o appollonius_n appian_n the_o grammarian_n and_o cornelius_n tacitus_n that_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o inward_o of_o the_o temple_n keep_v a_o ass_n head_n of_o gold_n which_o they_o worship_v ex_fw-la perer._n 22._o quest._n whether_o the_o prince_n be_v by_o fire_n and_o sword_n to_o root_v out_o they_o which_o be_v of_o contrary_a religion_n v_o 19_o nabuchadnezzer_n command_v these_o three_o holy_a man_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fiery_a oven_n wherein_o he_o
have_v a_o other_o exposition_n that_o hereby_o be_v signify_v that_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v advance_v from_o low_a degree_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n and_o that_o he_o be_v per_fw-la humilitatem_fw-la restitutus_fw-la restore_v again_o by_o humility_n 3._o but_o the_o use_n be_v rather_o more_o general_a that_o by_o this_o depose_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n so_o great_a a_o king_n man_n may_v learn_v that_o all_o kingdom_n be_v at_o god_n dispose_n see_v many_o time_n most_o base_a man_n have_v be_v advance_v to_o the_o kingly_a dignity_n and_o so_o as_o calvin_n well_o note_v hoc_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la in_o uno_fw-la rege_fw-la contigit_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o have_v not_o fall_v out_o only_o in_o one_o king_n it_o be_v notorious_a that_o among_o the_o roman_a and_o greek_a emperor_n some_o have_v be_v ●eateheards_n as_o cruel_a maximinus_n some_o swineheard_n as_o justinus_n the_o father_n of_o justinian_n quest._n 20._o why_o daniel_n hold_v his_o peace_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hour_n diverse_a reason_n may_v be_v yield_v of_o this_o silence_n of_o daniel_n 1._o some_o think_v that_o in_o this_o space_n daniel_n pray_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o dream_n as_o theodoret_n say_v prime_a ostendenda_fw-la erat_fw-la humana_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n first_o humane_a infirmity_n be_v to_o show_v itself_o and_o then_o inspire_v grace_n to_o be_v manifest_v etc._n etc._n so_o think_v dyonis_n carthusi_fw-la intra_fw-la hanc_fw-la horam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ei_fw-la ostensam_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o in_o this_o space_n be_v show_v unto_o he_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o dream_n se_fw-la totum_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la extulit_fw-la cum_fw-la pijs_fw-la precibus_fw-la he_o lift_v up_o his_o prayer_n unto_o god_n pint._n feruid_n dominum_fw-la oravit_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o earnest_o beseech_v the_o lord_n bull_v 2._o but_o this_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v all_o the_o cause_n for_o it_o be_v say_v daniel_n thought_n trouble_v he_o not_o because_o he_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o king_n use_v dolebat_fw-la pro_fw-la eo_fw-la he_o grieve_v for_o he_o of_o who_o he_o have_v receive_v such_o honour_n hierome_n so_o also_o lyran._n jun._n polan_n for_o the_o holy_a prophet_n have_v a_o double_a affection_n when_o they_o declare_v god_n judgement_n ex_fw-la una_fw-la parte_fw-la condolebant_fw-la miseris_fw-la hominibus_fw-la on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o pity_v those_o miserable_a man_n to_o who_o the_o judgement_n be_v denounce_v deinde_fw-la intrepide_fw-la pronuntiabant_fw-la yet_o they_o pronounce_v they_o without_o fear_n calvin_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o pause_n which_o he_o make_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o judgement_n which_o be_v determine_v and_o for_o that_o it_o grieved_a he_o for_o the_o king_n of_o who_o he_o have_v be_v so_o honour_v because_o the_o king_n encourage_v he_o to_o proceed_v whatsoever_o the_o dream_n be_v 3._o vtilis_fw-la etiam_fw-la fuit_fw-la regiscunctatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o in_o this_o behalf_n also_o this_o stay_n of_o daniel_n be_v profitable_a to_o the_o king_n that_o he_o may_v be_v more_o desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o truth_n oecolampaid_n pelli_fw-la this_o use_n the_o king_n may_v make_v thereof_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n which_o move_v daniel_n quest._n 21._o v._n 16._o in_o what_o sense_n daniel_n wish_v this_o dream_n to_o the_o king_n enemy_n daniel_n shall_v seem_v herein_o to_o pray_v against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o have_v so_o decree_v against_o nebuchednezzar_n and_o beside_o it_o may_v be_v think_v against_o charity_n to_o wish_v such_o thing_n unto_o those_o who_o he_o know_v not_o who_o may_v some_o of_o they_o be_v better_o than_o nabuchadnezzar_n 1._o some_o think_v therefore_o that_o daniel_n by_o this_o speech_n only_o show_v the_o great_a calamity_n which_o shall_v befall_v he_o such_o as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v a_o man_n wish_v to_o his_o enemy_n bull_v which_o be_v the_o cause_n he_o be_v so_o loath_a to_o open_v the_o dream_n because_o it_o pretend_v such_o heavy_a thing_n but_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o daniel_n trouble_v thought_n that_o he_o be_v indeed_o sorry_a for_o the_o king_n and_o wish_v that_o evil_n far_o away_o from_o he_o 2._o dyonis_n carthusian_n answer_v that_o this_o evil_n which_o he_o wish_v unto_o the_o king_n enemy_n might_n ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la animae_fw-la proficere_fw-la be_v profitable_a unto_o they_o for_o their_o soul_n health_n and_o therefore_o this_o wish_n be_v not_o uncharitable_a but_o it_o may_v as_o well_o have_v be_v for_o the_o health_n of_o nebuchadnezzars_n soul_n he_o shall_v not_o then_o have_v wish_v it_o from_o he_o 3._o some_o think_v that_o it_o be_v rather_o civilis_fw-la salutatio_fw-la then_o precatio_fw-la ex_fw-la fide_fw-la a_o civil_a kind_n of_o salutation_n than_o a_o prayer_n of_o faith_n which_o it_o be_v necessary_a daniel_n shall_v use_v to_o insinuate_v himself_o jun._n in_o commentar_n 4._o but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o a_o civil_a salutation_n for_o indeed_o daniel_n desire_v averti_fw-la tam_fw-la horri●ilem_fw-la poenam_fw-la à_fw-la regis_fw-la persona_fw-la such_o a_o horrible_a punishment_n to_o be_v turn_v away_o from_o the_o king_n calvin_n whereupon_o polanus_fw-la also_o note_v that_o we_o shall_v even_o pray_v for_o our_o enemy_n as_o daniel_n do_v for_o nabuchadnezzar_n who_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o hold_v they_o in_o captivity_n 5._o but_o daniel_n herein_o go_v not_o against_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n for_o he_o thus_o pray_v praesupposito_fw-la beneplacito_fw-la divino_fw-la presuppose_v if_o it_o be_v god_n good_a pleasure_n dyon_n carthus_n so_o also_o pintus_fw-la he_o know_v dei_fw-la minis_fw-la &_o promissionibus_fw-la haerere_fw-la svas_fw-la conditione_n that_o certain_a condions_a be_v annex_v to_o the_o threaten_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n jun._n for_o otherwise_o daniel_n in_o vain_a afterward_o have_v give_v counsel_n unto_o nabuchadnezzar_n here_o to_o prevent_v this_o calamity_n see_v further_o quest_n 29._o quest._n 22._o that_o at_o yrannicall_a government_n be_v better_a than_o a_o anarchy_n or_o no_o government_n v._o 19_o it_o be_v thou_o o_o king_n that_o be_v great_a and_o mighty_a 1._o though_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v a_o tyrant_n as_o both_o appear_v by_o his_o cruelty_n against_o the_o jew_n in_o destroy_v their_o city_n both_o burn_a the_o temple_n and_o put_v the_o people_n to_o the_o sword_n as_o also_o by_o his_o fierce_a rage_n show_v against_o the_o chaldean_n who_o he_o unjust_o cause_v to_o be_v kill_v cap._n 2._o because_o they_o can_v not_o tell_v he_o his_o dream_n which_o he_o have_v forget_v yet_o he_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o goodly_a tree_n which_o give_v meat_n and_o shadow_n unto_o the_o fowl_n and_o beast_n so_o that_o although_o tyrant_n and_o cruel_a governor_n seek_v to_o extinguish_v all_o equity_n and_o justice_n deus_fw-la retinet_fw-la illos_fw-la incomprehensibili_fw-la modo_fw-la god_n hold_v they_o in_o after_o a_o secret_a manner_n that_o some_o profit_n come_v by_o their_o government_n calvin_n as_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o be_v cruel_a yet_o ordain_v good_a politic_a law_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o alexander_n diocletian_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o code_n 2._o whereas_o when_o there_o be_v no_o government_n but_o every_o one_o do_v what_o they_o list_v there_o be_v a_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n a_o corruption_n both_o of_o manner_n and_o religion_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o judge_n when_o as_o there_o be_v no_o king_n in_o israel_n they_o follow_v what_o religion_n they_o will_v judg._n 17._o 6._o and_o they_o live_v as_o they_o will_v themselves_o without_o either_o fear_n of_o god_n or_o man_n as_o appear_z by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o man_n of_o gibeah_n against_o the_o levite_n wife_n judg._n 19_o quest._n 23._o v._n 10._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o hew_v down_o the_o tree_n 1._o if_o but_o one_o or_o two_o branch_n have_v be_v cut_v off_o yet_o the_o rest_n remain_v will_v have_v flourish_v still_o and_o so_o the_o loss_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o great_a as_o in_o a_o commonwealth_n when_o one_o noble_a man_n of_o account_n or_o one_o of_o excellent_a learning_n or_o virtue_n die_v and_o be_v take_v away_o though_o it_o be_v a_o loss_n or_o hindrance_n yet_o the_o country_n be_v not_o undo_v other_o may_v rise_v up_o in_o his_o place_n as_o when_o sulpitius_n that_o eloquent_a orator_n among_o the_o roman_n be_v slay_v yet_o cicero_n succeed_v in_o who_o that_o want_n be_v supply_v and_o if_o a_o king_n loose_v one_o city_n in_o his_o kingdom_n yet_o he_o may_v comfort_v himself_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o nabuchadnezzar_n at_o once_o shall_v loose_v all_o his_o great_a and_o large_a dominion_n and_o be_v strip_v of_o his_o regal_a dignity_n the_o duke_n of_o florence_n give_v for_o his_o ensign_n a_o
praise_n take_v from_o three_o property_n and_o adjunct_n of_o god_n work_n the_o verity_n and_o truth_n justice_n and_o equity_n and_o the_o power_n and_o omnipotence_n in_o these_o word_n who_o work_n be_v all_o truth_n and_o his_o way_n judgement_n and_o those_o that_o walk_v in_o pride_n he_o be_v able_a to_o abase_v v_o 34._o 43._o quest._n that_o god_n only_o be_v without_o check_n and_o not_o to_o be_v control_v in_o his_o work_n v_o 32._o none_o can_v stay_v his_o hand_n nor_o say_v unto_o he_o what_o do_v thou_o 1._o they_o which_o profane_o object_n that_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o a_o tyrant_n do_v what_o he_o list_v his_o will_n stand_v for_o law_n may_v easy_o be_v answer_v that_o this_o proposition_n they_o who_o will_n only_o stand_v for_o law_n be_v tyrant_n be_v true_a only_a among_o man_n it_o concern_v not_o god_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n be_v god_n be_v a_o law_n to_o himself_o quia_fw-la voluntas_fw-la eius_fw-la est_fw-la perfectissima_fw-la iustitia_fw-la because_o his_o will_n be_v most_o perfect_a justice_n calvin_n he_o can_v will_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o just_a so_o be_v it_o not_o with_o man_n who_o will_n be_v corrupt_a and_o perverse_a and_o therefore_o it_o have_v need_n of_o a_o rule_n and_o law_n to_o guide_v it_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o question_n among_o the_o civilian_n whether_o the_o prince_n have_v not_o a_o absolute_a power_n in_o his_o kingdom_n statuendi_fw-la omne_fw-la pro_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o appoint_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o will_n and_o so_o they_o will_v have_v the_o prince_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o check_n and_o controlment_n of_o this_o opinion_n be_v bartolus_n and_o his_o follower_n other_o do_v hold_v that_o even_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o be_v bind_v unto_o their_o law_n for_o they_o do_v thus_o profess_v digna_fw-la vox_fw-la est_fw-la maiestate_fw-la regnantis_fw-la legibus_fw-la alligatum_fw-la s●_n principem_fw-la profiteri_fw-la adeo_fw-la de_fw-la authoritate_fw-la iuris_fw-la nostra_fw-la pendet_fw-la authoritas_fw-la it_o be_v a_o voice_n worthy_a the_o majesty_n of_o he_o which_o rule_v for_o the_o prince_n to_o profess_v himself_o bind_v unto_o the_o law_n in_o so_o much_o that_o our_o authority_n depend_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n polan_n 3._o but_o thus_o may_v these_o opinion_n be_v reconcile_v that_o though_o prince_n be_v both_o bind_v by_o oath_n in_o some_o kingdom_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o country_n and_o in_o policy_n also_o do_v subject_a themselves_o to_o their_o own_o law_n for_o the_o example_n of_o other_o and_o beyond_o all_o these_o they_o be_v tie_v by_o a_o straight_a bond_n of_o god_n word_n yet_o they_o be_v without_o check_n of_o their_o subject_n their_o do_n be_v not_o of_o every_o one_o to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n as_o the_o preacher_n say_v c._n 8._o 4._o where_o the_o word_n of_o the_o king_n be_v there_o be_v power_n and_o who_o shall_v say_v unto_o he_o what_o do_v thou_o where_o prince_n hold_v immediate_o their_o kingdom_n of_o god_n there_o they_o be_v only_o to_o give_v account_n unto_o god_n but_o god_n be_v not_o to_o give_v account_n unto_o any_o and_o therefore_o of_o he_o only_o simple_o and_o absolute_o it_o be_v true_a that_o none_o can_v say_v what_o do_v thou_o both_o because_o of_o his_o perfect_a justice_n that_o none_o can_v find_v fault_n with_o his_o work_n and_o his_o absolute_a power_n that_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o check_n of_o any_o 44._o quest._n whether_o nebuchadnezzer_n be_v save_v 1._o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o he_o be_v not_o out_o of_o that_o place_n isa._n 14._o 14._o thou_o shall_v be_v bring_v down_o to_o hell_n to_o the_o side_n of_o the_o pit_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o nebuchadnezzer_n show_v his_o everlasting_a destruction_n in_o hell_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o in_o he_o be_v set_v forth_o and_o describe_v the_o fall_n of_o lucifer_n who_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o reprobate_a angel_n be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n answ._n 1._o though_o it_o be_v admit_v and_o grant_v that_o nebuchadnezzer_n herein_o be_v a_o type_n of_o lucifer_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v express_v in_o such_o typical_a prediction_n shall_v agree_v unto_o the_o type_n for_o some_o thing_n be_v so_o speak_v that_o they_o may_v fit_o agree_v both_o unto_o the_o type_n and_o figure_n and_o to_o the_o thing_n prefigure_v some_o unto_o the_o sign_n only_o some_o unto_o the_o thing_n prefigure_v only_o as_o in_o the_o 2._o psalm_n where_o david_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n the_o 2._o verse_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n band_n themselves_o etc._n etc._n agree_v unto_o both_o and_o v_o 6._o i_o have_v set_v my_o king_n upon_o zion_n but_o these_o word_n v_o 7._o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o can_v only_o be_v apply_v unto_o christ_n so_o in_o this_o place_n this_o cast_v down_o to_o hell_n may_v be_v understand_v only_o of_o lucifer_n here_o prefigure_v perer._n but_o there_o be_v better_a answer_n then_o this_o 2._o as_o this_o commination_n against_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n be_v conditional_o understand_v that_o unless_o he_o repent_v he_o shall_v be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n 3._o as_o it_o may_v be_v a_o allegorical_a speech_n show_v his_o great_a abasement_n as_o that_o other_o be_v i_o will_v ascend_v above_o the_o height_n of_o the_o cloud_n 4._o but_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v further_o and_o better_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o understand_v this_o prophecy_n of_o nebuchadnezzer_n but_o rather_o it_o be_v perform_v in_o balthasar_n for_o the_o prophet_n propehsy_v also_o together_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o babylon_n which_o continue_v many_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o nebuchadnezzer_n 5._o and_o last_o the_o word_n translate_v hell_n signify_v also_o the_o grave_n and_o so_o better_o interpret_v here_o because_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o pit_n 2._o wherefore_o the_o more_o probable_a and_o certain_a opinion_n be_v that_o nebuchadnezzer_n in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o these_o reason_n 1._o josephus_n say_v that_o nebuchadnezzer_n all_o his_o life_n long_o after_o this_o do_v acknowledge_v god_n and_o give_v praise_n and_o glory_n unto_o he_o 2._o dorotheus_n in_o synops._n and_o epiphanius_n infer_v as_o much_o upon_o his_o affliction_n that_o god_n therefore_o chastened_a he_o because_o he_o will_v not_o have_v he_o perish_v 3._o 〈…〉_z augustine_n show_v as_o much_o by_o the_o diverse_a end_n of_o pharaoh_n and_o nabuchadnezzer_n that_o he_o be_v harden_v in_o his_o sin_n and_o so_o give_v over_o to_o destruction_n the_o other_o be_v humble_v under_o god_n hand_n and_o so_o save_v 4._o theodoret_n likewise_o move_v the_o question_n why_o the_o lord_n punish_v nabuchadnezzers_n for_o a_o time_n but_o balthasar_n with_o sudden_a death_n make_v this_o answer_n because_o the_o lord_n do_v foresee_v that_o the_o one_o will_v be_v amend_v by_o his_o correction_n but_o the_o other_o be_v irrecorrigible_a 5._o last_o lyranus_fw-la add_v this_o reason_n scripturae_fw-la terminat_fw-la historiam_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la humiliatione_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o fidei_fw-la confession_n the_o scripture_n end_v this_o story_n in_o his_o humiliation_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o it_o use_v not_o to_o do_v in_o they_o that_o afterward_o fall_v away_o and_o be_v lose_v 45._o quest._n why_o nabuchadnezzer_n be_v save_v and_o not_o pharaoh_n both_o be_v in_o the_o same_o cause_n 1._o augustine_n put_v forth_o this_o question_n 15._o show_v wherein_o both_o of_o these_o be_v like_a quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la naturam_fw-la ambo_fw-la homines_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o respect_n of_o their_o nature_n they_o be_v both_o man_n for_o their_o dignity_n they_o be_v both_o king_n their_o cause_n be_v the_o fame_n they_o both_o hold_v the_o people_n of_o god_n captive_a quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la poenam_fw-la and_o for_o their_o punishment_n they_o both_o be_v gentle_o admonish_v with_o god_n scourge_n and_o yet_o their_o end_n be_v diverse_a the_o question_n be_v cur_n medicamentum_fw-la unius_fw-la medici_fw-la manu_fw-la confectum_fw-la alij_fw-la ad_fw-la interitum_fw-la alij_fw-la valuerit_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la etc._n etc._n why_o a_o medicine_n make_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o same_o physician_n shall_v be_v effectual_a to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o one_o and_o for_o the_o health_n of_o the_o other_o 2._o his_o answer_n be_v this_o because_o the_o one_o be_v humble_v under_o the_o lord_n correction_n the_o other_o harden_v but_o than_o it_o will_v be_v ask_v why_o the_o one_o be_v humble_v the_o other_o harden_v the_o answer_n must_v be_v this_o illi_fw-la ut_fw-la mutaretur_fw-la adfuisse_fw-la divinum_fw-la huic_fw-la ut_fw-la
among_o the_o mede_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n niglasar_n and_o his_o son_n labosardach_n after_o he_o a_o while_n usurp_v the_o kingdom_n and_o after_o that_o balthasar_n be_v restore_v so_o that_o balthasar_n be_v in_o deed_n the_o right_a nephew_n of_o nabuchadnezzer_n yet_o call_v his_o son_n according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n see_v before_o quest_n 2._o quest._n 22._o of_o the_o queen_n oration_n to_o the_o king_n it_o consist_v of_o 4._o part_n 1._o the_o salutation_n o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o whereby_o she_o do_v insinuate_v herself_o 2._o the_o proposition_n which_o contain_v the_o drift_n and_o scope_n of_o her_o speech_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v trouble_v v_o 10._o 3._o the_o narration_n follow_v contain_v a_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v trouble_v because_o there_o be_v a_o man_n find_v in_o his_o kingdom_n who_o be_v able_a to_o reveal_v this_o secret_a in_o this_o narration_n three_o thing_n be_v express_v 1._o a_o description_n of_o daniel_n by_o his_o gift_n 2._o the_o experience_n of_o his_o gift_n in_o the_o day_n of_o nabuchadnezer_n which_o be_v three_o light_n or_o illumination_n by_o god_n spirit_n understand_v in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v and_o wisdom_n in_o wise_o and_o fit_o apply_v the_o same_o 3._o then_o the_o approbation_n of_o his_o gift_n and_o public_a testification_n by_o his_o advancement_n he_o be_v set_v over_o all_o the_o wise_a man_n 4._o the_o four_o part_n be_v the_o conclusion_n that_o daniel_n may_v be_v send_v for_o to_o interpret_v the_o king_n vision_n with_o a_o repetition_n of_o the_o argument_n take_v from_o his_o sufficiency_n and_o ability_n which_o consist_v either_o in_o his_o gift_n which_o be_v the_o three_o before_o name_v a_o excellent_a spirit_n call_v before_o light_n understand_v and_o knowledge_n call_v before_o wisdom_n or_o else_o in_o the_o exercise_v and_o use_n of_o these_o gift_n special_o in_o the_o expound_v of_o dream_n more_o general_o in_o declare_v hard_a sentence_n and_o most_o general_o of_o all_o in_o declare_v any_o manner_n of_o doubt_n or_o hide_v matter_n v_o 12._o quest._n 23._o of_o the_o excellent_a wisdom_n and_o other_o princely_a part_n in_o this_o old_a queen_n 1._o in_o that_o she_o come_v in_o upon_o this_o occasion_n to_o the_o banquet_n not_o have_v be_v there_o before_o therein_o she_o be_v a_o example_n of_o great_a temperance_n and_o sobriety_n in_o not_o be_v present_a at_o this_o riotous_a seast_z polan_n 2._o her_o wisdom_n appear_v in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o her_o speech_n she_o salute_v the_o king_n with_o love_a word_n to_o insinuate_v herself_o therein_o also_o give_v a_o example_n of_o due_a reverence_n to_o be_v yield_v unto_o king_n bull_v 3._o she_o be_v sola_fw-la admiratrix_fw-la viriutum_fw-la danielis_fw-la find_v to_o be_v the_o only_a admirer_n of_o daniel_n gift_n oecolamp_n and_o set_v he_o forth_o as_o one_o excel_v all_o other_o in_o the_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n 4._o and_o beside_o in_o make_v mention_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n a_o prince_n of_o great_a wisdom_n and_o judgement_n who_o advance_v daniel_n for_o his_o excellent_a wisdom_n ostendit_fw-la eum_fw-la nimis_fw-la crass_a arrare_fw-la she_o show_v that_o he_o great_o err_v in_o neglect_v such_o a_o excellent_a man_n in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o seek_v satisfaction_n of_o other_o where_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v calvin_n herein_o then_o appear_v her_o faithfulness_n in_o give_v such_o good_a advice_n unto_o the_o king_n 5._o and_o the_o queen_n who_o herodotus_n call_v nitocris_n be_v by_o the_o same_o author_n commend_v for_o a_o woman_n of_o great_a wisdom_n whereof_o he_o give_v this_o experiment_n she_o cause_v her_o tomb_n to_o be_v make_v in_o a_o high_a and_o conspicuous_a place_n over_o one_o of_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n with_o a_o inscription_n to_o this_o effect_n that_o if_o any_o of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n want_v money_n if_o he_o open_v that_o sepulchre_n he_o shall_v find_v enough_o afterwards_o darius_n of_o persia_n open_v the_o tomb_n wherein_o he_o find_v nothing_o but_o a_o write_n to_o this_o effect_n that_o if_o he_o have_v not_o a_o unsatiable_a mind_n he_o will_v not_o have_v rake_v in_o the_o tomb_n and_o ash_n of_o the_o dead_a 6._o this_o woman_n for_o her_o great_a age_n and_o experience_n like_v to_o have_v be_v the_o wife_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n be_v of_o great_a wisdom_n she_o be_v not_o balthazar_n be_v wife_a as_o be_v before_o show_v quest_n 20._o and_o therefore_o porphyry_n his_o scoff_n that_o the_o wife_n here_o show_v herself_o wise_a than_o her_o husband_n be_v soon_o answer_v quest._n 24._o of_o balthazar_n be_v speech_n to_o daniel_n v_o 13._o be_v thou_o that_o daniel_n etc._n etc._n 1._o he_o upbraid_v he_o with_o his_o captivity_n which_o be_v of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o captivity_n etc._n etc._n junius_n and_o polanus_fw-la follow_v he_o think_v that_o he_o move_v this_o question_n to_o be_v certain_a of_o his_o person_n but_o there_o be_v no_o more_o of_o that_o name_n or_o of_o those_o excellent_a part_n it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o his_o pride_n as_o insult_v over_o the_o poor_a captive_n and_o vaunt_v of_o the_o victory_n which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v get_v the_o queen_n wise_o conceal_v this_o hoc_fw-la unum_fw-la commemorate_fw-la gloriosus_fw-la rex_fw-la but_o the_o king_n remember_v this_o one_o thing_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n oecolamp_n so_o also_o bull_v the_o gloss_n say_v that_o he_o ask_v this_o question_n because_o the_o prophet_n be_v only_o of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o if_o the_o king_n have_v hold_v such_o a_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o will_v not_o have_v rely_v upon_o his_o chaldean_a soothsayer_n therefore_o these_o question_n rather_o spirant_fw-la superbiam_fw-la regis_fw-la do_v breath_n out_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o king_n osiand_n 2._o the_o king_n simplicity_n appear_v that_o say_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o be_v put_v before_o into_o his_o mouth_n as_o unwise_a and_o simple_a prince_n use_v to_o speak_v unto_o their_o people_n conceptis_fw-la verbis_fw-la &_o in_o aurem_fw-la suggestis_fw-la in_o a_o set_a speech_n and_o suggest_v as_o it_o be_v to_o their_o ear_n bull_v 3._o detegitur_fw-la eius_fw-la socordia_fw-la his_o carelessness_n appear_v that_o have_v nothing_o but_o by_o hearsay_n calvin_n that_o he_o do_v not_o take_v knowledge_n himself_o of_o so_o worthy_a and_o excellent_a a_o man_n as_o daniel_n be_v 4._o dubitanter_fw-la loquor_fw-la he_o speak_v doubtful_o v_o 16._o if_o thou_o can_v etc._n etc._n he_o have_v yet_o more_o confidence_n in_o his_o chaldee_n oecolamp_n 5._o non_fw-la quaerit_fw-la consilium_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o do_v not_o require_v any_o counsel_n how_o he_o may_v escape_v this_o danger_n but_o only_o to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o dream_n pelican_n quest._n 25._o of_o daniel_n answer_n to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o it_o consist_v 1._o of_o the_o exordtum_fw-la or_o preface_n and_o 2._o of_o the_o narration_n 1._o in_o the_o preface_n there_o be_v 1._o a_o refusal_n of_o the_o king_n reward_n than_o a_o promise_n and_o undertake_v to_o interpret_v the_o dream_n 2._o in_o the_o narration_n there_o be_v first_o a_o redargution_n and_o reprehension_n of_o the_o king_n show_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o lord_n send_v this_o strange_a sight_n v_o 25._o then_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o vision_n in_o the_o reprehension_n 1._o there_o be_v a_o commemoration_n of_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n to_o v_o 22._o 2._o a_o application_n thereof_o to_o the_o king_n in_o the_o commemoration_n 1._o the_o benefit_n be_v rehearse_v which_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o nabuchadnezzar_n a_o kingdom_n majesty_n authority_n and_o honour_n v_o 18._o 2._o his_o unthankfulness_n be_v show_v that_o abuse_v his_o authority_n and_o power_n to_o cruelty_n injustice_n and_o tyranny_n v_o 19_o 3._o his_o punishment_n be_v declare_v 1._o in_o his_o deprivation_n and_o depose_n from_o his_o kingly_a estate_n 2._o in_o the_o misery_n that_o befall_v he_o live_v and_o dwell_v among_o bruit_n beast_n to_o v_o 22._o in_o the_o application_n the_o reprehension_n be_v set_v forth_o first_o negative_o that_o he_o be_v not_o move_v with_o a_o example_n which_o be_v so_o near_o he_o even_o in_o his_o grandfather_n who_o be_v here_o call_v his_o father_n then_o affirmative_o he_o have_v lift_v up_o his_o heart_n which_o be_v describe_v by_o four_o effect_n 1._o in_o that_o he_o have_v bring_v forth_o the_o vessel_n of_o god_n house_n 2._o he_o have_v profane_v they_o in_o that_o he_o his_o prince_n wife_n and_o concubine_n drink_v in_o they_o 3._o he_o praise_v their_o idol_n which_o be_v describe_v 1._o by_o their_o matter_n they_o be_v make_v but_o of_o silver_n brass_n and_o
the_o victory_n than_o be_v special_o ascribe_v unto_o darius_n though_o it_o be_v achieve_v and_o obtain_v by_o cyrus_n skill_n and_o valour_n for_o these_o three_o reason_n as_o hierome_n brief_o express_v they_o ord●_n aetatis_fw-la propinquitatis_fw-la &_o regni_fw-la servatus_fw-la est_fw-la the_o order_n of_o age_n of_o affinity_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v keep_v 1._o darius_n be_v now_o not_o only_o 40._o divinat_fw-la year_n old_a as_o cicero_n say_v but_o 62._o year_n old_a cyrus_n be_v a_o young_a man_n 2._o he_o be_v cyrus_n great_a uncle_n his_o grandfather_n astyages_n brother_n and_o beside_o as_o some_o think_v his_o father_n in_o law_n 3._o and_o now_o the_o chief_a dominion_n be_v in_o the_o mede_n from_o who_o it_o be_v translate_v after_o darius_n death_n by_o cyrus_n to_o the_o persian_n 48._o quest._n of_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o babylonian_a war_n 1._o heaodotus_fw-la think_v it_o be_v only_a cyrus_n ambition_n and_o immoderate_a desire_n of_o enlarge_a his_o dominion_n that_o make_v he_o enterprise_v this_o battle_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a cause_n for_o cyrus_n be_v but_o a_o assistant_n and_o associate_n unto_o darius_n in_o this_o exploit_n as_o be_v before_o show_v 2._o the_o author_n of_o the_o scholastical_a history_n imagine_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o mother_n of_o baltbazar_n for_o who_o cause_n those_o hang_a orchard_n be_v make_v in_o babylon_n be_v this_o darius_n daughter_n and_o now_o balthasar_n have_v no_o son_n darius_n attempt_v to_o invade_v the_o kingdom_n balthasar_n yet_o live_v but_o this_o be_v not_o like_a for_o darius_n can_v pretend_v no_o title_n at_o all_o by_o this_o pretext_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n especial_o balthasar_n the_o right_a heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v alive_a 3._o that_o cause_n be_v more_o probable_a which_o be_v allege_v by_o xenoph._n lib._n 1._o that_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n combine_v himself_o with_o the_o king_n of_o asia_n be_v purpose_v to_o have_v war_v against_o the_o mede_n who_o have_v then_o the_o chief_a dominion_n and_o therefore_o darius_n to_o prevent_v he_o first_o set_v upon_o babylon_n 4._o but_o what_o cause_n soever_o move_v they_o the_o special_a stirrer_n and_o instigator_n to_o this_o battle_n be_v the_o lord_n himself_o as_o jerem._n 14._o the_o lord_n have_v break_v the_o rod_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o sceptre_n of_o the_o ruler_n and_o jerem._n 51._o 11._o the_o lord_n have_v raise_v up_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o mede_n 5._o for_o the_o lord_n be_v provoke_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o babel_n and_o therefore_o bring_v this_o desolation_n and_o destruction_n upon_o they_o which_o sin_n be_v these_o 1._o their_o cruelty_n and_o oppression_n isa._n 14._o 6._o which_o smite_v the_o people_n in_o anger_n with_o a_o continual_a plague_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o be_v not_o only_o cruel_a towards_o other_o nation_n but_o special_o against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n when_o they_o destroy_v their_o city_n and_o temple_n and_o therefore_o jeremie_n say_v c._n 51._o 11._o it_o be_v the_o vengeance_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o vengeance_n of_o his_o temple_n 2._o a_o other_o of_o their_o great_a sin_n be_v their_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n jerem._n 51._o 44._o i_o will_v visit_v bel_n in_o babel_n v_o 52._o i_o will_v visit_v her_o grave_a image_n 3._o the_o babylonian_n be_v give_v to_o divination_n to_o sorcery_n and_o enchantiment_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v punish_v isa._n 47._o 9_o they_o shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o etc._n etc._n for_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o divination_n and_o for_o the_o great_a abundance_n of_o thy_o enchantment_n 4._o and_o to_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o iniquity_n balthasar_n have_v in_o this_o his_o last_o and_o as_o it_o be_v his_o funeral_n feast_n profane_v the_o vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o blaspheme_v god_n all_o these_o sin_n be_v put_v together_o make_v up_o the_o full_a measure_n and_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v no_o long_o defer_v 49._o quest._n whether_o babylon_n be_v at_o this_o time_n final_o destroy_v according_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n 1._o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o a_o utter_a overthrow_n and_o subversion_n of_o babylon_n as_o isa._n 13._o 19_o babel_n the_o glory_n of_o kingdom_n and_o the_o beauty_n and_o pride_n of_o the_o chaldean_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o destruction_n of_o god_n in_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v inhabit_v for_o ever_o etc._n etc._n and_o c._n 14._o 23._o i_o will_v make_v it_o a_o possession_n for_o the_o hedgehog_n and_o pool_n of_o water_n and_o i_o will_v sweep_v it_o with_o the_o bosom_n of_o destruction_n say_v the_o lord_n jerem._n 50._o 23._o babel_n be_v become_v desolate_a among_o the_o nation_n etc._n etc._n but_o at_o this_o time_n babylon_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o such_o desolation_n for_o it_o continue_v after_o the_o reign_n of_o darius_n and_o cyrus_n to_o the_o time_n of_o alexander_n be_v then_o a_o city_n of_o great_a riches_n and_o power_n 2._o some_o to_o wind_v themselves_o out_o of_o this_o straight_a do_v make_v a_o allegory_n of_o these_o prophetical_a prediction_n who_o hierome_n just_o reprehend_v in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 13._o c._n of_o isa_n for_o if_o still_o upon_o every_o doubt_n and_o objection_n man_n shall_v fly_v unto_o allegory_n there_o will_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n 3._o calvin_n to_o dissolve_v this_o knot_n say_v that_o babylon_n be_v subdue_v twice_o once_o by_o cyrus_n and_o darius_n the_o mede_n then_o afterward_o by_o darius_n hystaspis_n by_o the_o help_n of_o zopyrus_n when_o 3000._o of_o the_o noble_n be_v hang_v up_o and_o many_o other_o put_v to_o the_o sword_n but_o although_o this_o second_o take_v of_o babylon_n be_v more_o cruel_a and_o grievous_a than_o the_o other_o yet_o neither_o at_o this_o time_n be_v it_o final_o overthrow_v as_o be_v before_o show_v 4._o wherefore_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o these_o prophecy_n be_v not_o fulfil_v all_o at_o once_o neither_o be_v babylon_n at_o the_o first_o bring_v to_o utter_v desolation_n but_o by_o degree_n 1._o it_o be_v surprise_v by_o cyrus_n and_o darius_n and_o deprive_v of_o the_o empire_n and_o dominion_n 2._o afterward_o it_o be_v deface_v by_o darius_n hystaspis_n when_o they_o rebel_v and_o the_o wall_n be_v break_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n herod_n lib._n 3._o justin._n lib._n 1._o 3._o after_o this_o not_o far_o from_o babylon_n by_o seleucus_n nicanor_n be_v build_v the_o city_n seleucia_n and_o by_o the_o parthian_n the_o city_n ctesiphon_n plin._n lib._n 6._o c._n 26._o and_o so_o babylon_n be_v almost_o exhaust_v by_o this_o mean_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n 4._o in_o the_o emperor_n adrians_n time_n as_o pausanias_n write_v lib._n 8._o babylon_n nihil_fw-la praeter_fw-la muros_fw-la reliqui_fw-la habet_fw-la have_v nothing_o leave_v but_o the_o wall_n 5._o in_o hieromes_n time_n as_o he_o write_v from_o the_o report_n of_o a_o elamite_n the_o wall_n of_o babylon_n only_o serve_v to_o keep_v in_o wild_a beast_n for_o the_o king_n game_n and_o so_o he_o say_v usque_fw-la in_o praesentem_fw-la diem_fw-la prophetia_fw-la babylonis_fw-la impletur_fw-la even_o unto_o this_o day_n the_o prophecy_n on_o babel_n be_v fulfil_v isa._n 13._o 20._o neither_o shall_v the_o arabian_a pitch_n his_o teut_n there_o neither_o shall_v the_o shepherd_n make_v their_o fold_n there_o and_o so_o according_o it_o be_v fulfil_v as_o hierome_n say_v praemultitudine_fw-la bestiarum_fw-la &_o daemonum_fw-la nullus_fw-la pastorum_fw-la audet_fw-la intrare_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o beast_n and_o of_o devil_n and_o unclean_a spirit_n that_o there_o haunt_v no_o shepherd_n dare_v enter_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o babylon_n 50._o quest._n how_o long_o the_o chaldean_a empire_n and_o monarchy_n continue_v there_o be_v three_o general_a opinion_n hereof_o 1._o some_o extend_v it_o not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o 70._o year_n 2._o some_o limit_n it_o unto_o 70._o year_n 3._o some_o make_v it_o far_o to_o exceed_v the_o tear●●_n of_o 70._o year_n 1._o of_o the_o first_o opinion_n be_v diverse_a one_o disagree_v from_o a_o other_o berosus_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o nabuchadnezer_n reign_v to_o the_o end_n of_o balthazar_n be_v count_v but_o 65._o year_n as_o josephus_n allege_v he_o lib._n 1._o cont_n appion_n alexander_n polyhistor_n cite_v by_o euseb._n lib._n 9_o the_o praep_n evang._n reckon_v but_o 62._o year_n clemens_n alex._n lib._n 1._o stromat_fw-la and_o august_n lib._n 18._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la do_v make_v the_o sum_n but_o 48._o year_n but_o the_o scripture_n evident_o convince_v all_o these_o which_o show_v that_o the_o chaldean_n shall_v rule_v over_o nation_n 70._o year_n jerem._n 25._o 11._o and_o so_o long_a the_o jew_n shall_v be_v in_o captivity_n under_o
vain_a be_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o allege_v that_o they_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n but_o as_o it_o have_v relation_n to_o he_o that_o be_v represent_v thereby_o poaln_v see_v further_o of_o this_o controversy_n synops._n centur._n 2._o p._n 402._o 2._o controv._n whether_o image_n in_o church_n may_v be_v retain_v though_o they_o be_v not_o worship_v like_a as_o they_o only_o do_v not_o worship_n god_n which_o do_v pray_v unto_o he_o and_o fall_v down_o before_o he_o but_o they_o also_o which_o do_v fight_v for_o he_o so_o they_o be_v not_o only_a worshipper_n of_o image_n which_o do_v bow_n unto_o they_o but_o they_o also_o which_o do_v maintain_v they_o and_o strive_v still_o to_o have_v they_o retain_v in_o this_o place_n they_o be_v not_o say_v to_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o to_o praise_v they_o so_o they_o be_v praiser_n of_o image_n which_o think_v they_o may_v be_v retain_v as_o ornament_n in_o their_o church_n for_o the_o very_a make_n of_o such_o image_n for_o any_o religious_a use_n be_v accurse_v before_o god_n and_o abominable_a and_o therefore_o defile_v god_n house_n it_o can_v be_v no_o ornament_n unto_o it_o as_o deut._n 27._o 15._o curse_a be_v the_o man_n that_o shall_v make_v any_o carve_a or_o melt_a image_n which_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n god_n do_v not_o only_o forbid_v the_o israelite_n to_o make_v they_o any_o such_o image_n but_o he_o command_v they_o to_o break_v down_o and_o deface_v the_o image_n of_o the_o canaanite_n deut._n 7._o 5._o they_o may_v with_o as_o good_a pretence_n have_v keep_v they_o for_o ornament_n as_o the_o lutheran_n do_v popish_a image_n in_o their_o church_n but_o as_o augustine_n say_v deus_fw-la istarum_fw-la omnium_fw-la superstitionum_fw-la eversionem_fw-la iussit_fw-la permissit_v exhibuit_fw-la god_n have_v command_v permit_v exhibit_v unto_o christian_n the_o subversion_n and_o overthrow_n of_o all_o such_o superstition_n 3._o contro_fw-la that_o no_o protestant_n but_o papist_n be_v the_o profa●ers_n of_o holy_a thing_n v_o 23._o they_o have_v bring_v the_o vessel_n of_o his_o house_n before_o thou_o pererius_n take_v here_o occasion_n p._n 399._o to_o enueigh_v against_o protestant_n who_o he_o false_o and_o contumelious_o call_v heretic_n quire_n sacras_fw-la judi●rio_n &_o contemptui_fw-la habeant_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o do_v contemn_v and_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o holy_a thing_n which_o they_o take_v away_o from_o sacred_a place_n and_o person_n and_o put_v they_o to_o impure_a and_o wicked_a use_n contra._n 1._o we_o deny_v that_o church_n vessel_n and_o implement_n take_v from_o idolater_n be_v sacred_a thing_n they_o be_v never_o consecrate_v unto_o god_n but_o to_o superstitious_a use_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v no_o sacrilege_n to_o convert_v such_o thing_n to_o civil_a use_n 2._o if_o any_o have_v abuse_v such_o thing_n notwithstanding_o to_o riot_n and_o excess_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v excuse_v 3._o but_o the_o papist_n be_v the_o profaner_n of_o holy_a thing_n indeed_o they_o profane_v the_o scripture_n not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n understanding_n and_o the_o sacrament_n in_o pollute_v they_o with_o their_o own_o invention_n they_o baptise_v bell_n and_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 4._o the_o church_n maintenance_n by_o tithe_n they_o first_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n and_o translate_v they_o to_o their_o abbey_n where_o their_o fat_a belly_a monk_n waste_v and_o consume_v they_o in_o riot_n as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v 4._o controv._n that_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a period_n of_o kingdom_n pappus_n here_o note_v that_o concern_v the_o period_n of_o kingdom_n they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n quingentorum_fw-la annorum_fw-la of_o five_o hundred_o year_n or_o half_o so_o much_o as_o the_o assyrian_a empire_n continue_v 520._o year_n from_o the_o go_v out_o of_o israel_n be_v count_v 480._o year_n and_o thence_o to_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n 430._o year_n from_o thence_o to_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 490._o year_n the_o kingdom_n of_o athens_n from_o cecrope_n to_o codrus_n continue_v 490._o year_n and_o so_o long_a the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o lacedaemonian_n from_o lycurgus_n to_o the_o end_n and_o subversion_n thereof_o some_o kingdom_n continue_v but_o half_a the_o time_n of_o this_o period_n as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n in_o samaria_n 262._o year_n the_o persian_a monarchy_n 230._o the_o king_n among_o the_o roman_n reign_v 245._o year_n contra._n 1._o first_o they_o can_v define_v no_o certain_a period_n of_o kingdom_n some_o will_v have_v 500_o year_n the_o period_n some_o 700._o some_o a_o 120._o year_n and_o here_o before_o diverse_a example_n be_v allege_v of_o unlike_a continuance_n 2._o the_o example_n be_v impertinent_a the_o assyrian_a empire_n be_v hold_v to_o have_v continue_v above_o a_o 1000_o year_n the_o state_n of_o the_o judge_n exceed_v not_o 300._o year_n the_o 490._o year_n till_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n take_v not_o begin_v from_o the_o captivity_n but_o from_o the_o re-edify_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o the_o captivity_n as_o be_v evident_a dan._n 9_o and_o in_o that_o time_n there_o be_v great_a alteration_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o jew_n 3._o but_o many_o contrary_a example_n may_v be_v produce_v the_o roman_a state_n after_o the_o king_n be_v expel_v under_o consul_n and_o dictator_n eudure_v above_o 600._o year_n the_o dominion_n of_o the_o turk_n have_v bear_v sway_n a_o 1000_o year_n the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n have_v continue_v a_o 1200._o year_n the_o state_n of_o venice_n 800._o and_o for_o short_a continuance_n the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o athenian_n exceed_v not_o 50._o year_n nor_o the_o chalde_n empire_n many_o above_o 70._o this_o therefore_o be_v a_o vain_a observation_n of_o any_o such_o certain_a and_o definite_a period_n of_o kingdom_n 4._o further_o in_o that_o this_o chaldean_a monarchy_n be_v dissolve_v because_o of_o their_o iniquity_n two_o other_o error_n be_v meet_v withal_o 1._o of_o they_o which_o think_v that_o the_o alteration_n and_o change_n of_o kingdom_n be_v rule_v by_o the_o constellation_n and_o aspect_n of_o planet_n the_o chaldean_n be_v very_o expert_a in_o such_o contemplation_n who_o can_v foresee_v no_o such_o thing_n that_o their_o monarchy_n be_v so_o near_o unto_o a_o end_n 2._o they_o be_v also_o here_o confute_v which_o think_v there_o be_v a_o fatal_a destiny_n of_o kingdom_n that_o by_o a_o inevitable_a necessity_n which_o depend_v upon_o the_o connexion_n and_o concurrence_n of_o certain_a secundarie_n cause_n commonwealth_n come_v unto_o their_o fatal_a end_n we_o see_v in_o this_o place_n that_o no_o such_o second_o cause_n here_o concur_v but_o it_o be_v god_n decree_n and_o the_o write_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n which_o dissolve_v the_o babylonian_a state_n for_o the_o iniquity_n thereof_o 6._o moral_a observation_n 1._o observ._n of_o the_o dangerous_a sin_n of_o drunkenness_n v_o 2._o while_o balthasar_n taste_v the_o wine_n etc._n etc._n the_o king_n be_v intoxicate_a here_o with_o wine_n cast_v off_o all_o care_n of_o god_n and_o man_n he_o fall_v to_o profaneness_n and_o blasphemy_n such_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o drunkenness_n it_o make_v noah_n discover_v his_o nakedness_n lot_z to_o commit_v incest_n it_o cause_v benhadad_n with_o his_o 30._o king_n to_o be_v overcome_v of_o a_o few_o 1._o king_n 20._o and_o simon_n the_o macchabe_n be_v fill_v with_o good_a cheer_n be_v slay_v at_o a_o banquet_n alexander_n the_o great_a kill_v more_o of_o his_o friend_n when_o he_o be_v drink_v than_o he_o do_v enemy_n in_o battle_n pythagoras_n therefore_o well_o say_v ebrietatem_fw-la brenem_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o saniam_fw-la that_o drunkenness_n be_v a_o short_a kind_n of_o madness_n and_o anacharsis_n his_o say_n be_v primum_fw-la poculum_fw-la vini_fw-la esse_fw-la sanitatis_fw-la alterum_fw-la voluptatis_fw-la tertium_fw-la contumeliae_fw-la the_o first_o cup_n of_o wine_n be_v for_o health_n the_o next_o for_o pleasure_n the_o three_o be_v rage_v and_o contumelious_a etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n therefore_o exhort_v be_v not_o drink_v with_o wine_n wherein_o be_v excess_n ephes._n 5._o 18._o yea_o he_o show_v that_o drunkard_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 2._o cor._n 6._o 10._o what_o madness_n then_o be_v it_o for_o so_o short_a and_o a_o beastly_a pleasure_n to_o loose_v god_n inheritance_n at_o the_o least_o to_o put_v it_o in_o hazard_n 2._o observ._n against_o carnal_a security_n this_o balthasar_n be_v so_o near_o unto_o his_o destruction_n give_v himself_o to_o banquet_v and_o feast_v to_o drink_v and_o to_o be_v drunken_a so_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a many_o time_n be_v most_o secure_a when_o their_o judgement_n be_v at_o hand_n according_a to_o that_o say_n in_o the_o proverb_n 16
for_o their_o wisdom_n and_o other_o gift_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v advance_v which_o be_v not_o esteem_v of_o according_a to_o that_o observation_n of_o the_o preacher_n cap._n 10._o 7._o i_o have_v see_v servant_n on_o horse_n and_o prince_n for_o their_o knowledge_n and_o gift_n walk_v as_o servant_n on_o the_o ground_n 5._o observ._n that_o it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n not_o to_o profit_v by_o the_o example_n of_o other_o v_o 22._o and_o thou_o his_o son_n o_o belthassar_n have_v not_o humble_v thyself_o his_o sin_n be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a because_o he_o have_v his_o father_n example_n before_o he_o who_o god_n have_v humble_v for_o his_o pride_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o be_v warn_v as_o lamechs_n profaneness_n be_v set_v forth_o for_o that_o he_o threaten_v to_o kill_v a_o young_a man_n in_o his_o rage_n flatter_a himself_o in_o his_o impunity_n 4._o yet_o have_v before_o his_o eye_n such_o a_o fearful_a example_n of_o god_n severity_n upon_o cain_n for_o the_o like_a sin_n 6._o observ_n the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v have_v a_o end_n v_o 26._o god_n have_v number_v thy_o kingdom_n the_o people_n of_o god_n endure_v much_o sorrow_n under_o the_o hard_a bondage_n and_o servitude_n of_o babylon_n but_o now_o their_o tyranny_n be_v at_o a_o end_n so_o when_o the_o israelite_n be_v most_o cruel_o oppress_v in_o egypt_n the_o lord_n look_v upon_o their_o affliction_n &_o number_v pharaoh_n kingdom_n so_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v number_v which_o for_o 300._o year_n have_v persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o god_n raise_v up_o constantine_n to_o be_v their_o deliverer_n and_o in_o this_o latter_a age_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o long_a time_n rage_v against_o christ_n member_n the_o lord_n bring_v he_o to_o number_n and_o account_n and_o have_v free_v his_o church_n in_o many_o famous_a kingdom_n from_o his_o tyranny_n chap._n vi_o 1._o the_o method_n and_o argument_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v set_v forth_o the_o miraculous_a deliverance_n of_o daniel_n from_o the_o lion_n with_o the_o occasion_n thereof_o go_v before_o and_o the_o effect_n that_o follow_v it_o have_v three_o part_n 1._o a_o narration_n of_o daniel_n dignity_n and_o honour_n 2._o the_o envy_n thereupon_o raise_v against_o he_o with_o the_o effect_n to_o v_o 21._o 3._o the_o deliverance_n of_o daniel_n whereunto_o he_o be_v bring_v through_o envy_n 1._o daniel_n dignity_n be_v describe_v 1._o by_o the_o efficient_a cause_n and_o author_n of_o his_o advancement_n the_o king_n v_o 1._o 2._o by_o the_o degree_n of_o his_o honour_n 1._o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o three_o set_v over_o the_o 120._o governor_n 2._o he_o be_v make_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a of_o the_o three_o v_o 3._o 3._o the_o king_n purpose_v to_o set_v he_o over_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n 2._o hereupon_o daniel_n be_v envy_v envy_n bring_v forth_o malicious_a practise_v against_o daniel_n which_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n 1._o they_o practise_v but_o prevail_v not_o v_o 4._o 2._o they_o practise_v against_o daniel_n and_o prevail_v where_o first_o be_v set_v forth_o their_o consultation_n v_o 5._o 2._o the_o put_v the_o same_o in_o practice_n where_o these_o three_o thing_n be_v show_v 1._o the_o enact_v of_o a_o law_n to_o entrap_v daniel_n v_o 11._o 2._o the_o urge_v of_o the_o law_n to_o v_o 16._o 3._o the_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o daniel_n with_o the_o effect_n thereof_o 1._o in_o the_o make_n of_o the_o law_n there_o be_v 1._o their_o petition_n to_o the_o king_n to_o make_v a_o law_n v_o 5._o and_o to_o ratify_v it_o 2._o the_o king_n condescend_v v_o 9_o 2._o the_o law_n be_v urge_v where_o 1._o be_v set_v forth_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o accusation_n they_o find_v daniel_n pray_v the_o manner_n of_o who_o prayer_n be_v describe_v v_o 10._o see_v quest_n 12._o follow_v 2._o the_o manner_n of_o their_o accusation_n which_o contain_v a_o general_a repetition_n of_o the_o law_n make_v v_o 12._o &_o a_o particular_a accusation_n against_o daniel_n with_o false_a suggestion_n v_o 13._o 3._o the_o king_n endeavour_n to_o deliver_v daniel_n v_o 14._o 3._o the_o execution_n follow_v 1._o with_o the_o cause_n thereof_o the_o urge_v of_o the_o prince_n v_o 15._o 2._o the_o manner_n the_o king_n commandment_n go_v before_o in_o the_o instant_a the_o king_n use_v comfortable_a word_n v_o 16._o and_o afterward_o to_o make_v all_o sure_a he_o and_o the_o prince_n seal_v the_o stone_n of_o the_o lion_n cave_n or_o den_n v_o 17._o 3._o then_o follow_v the_o effect_n 1._o the_o king_n heaviness_n show_v by_o three_o effect_n the_o refuse_v of_o his_o meat_n of_o his_o delight_n and_o of_o his_o sleep_n v_o 18._o 2._o the_o king_n early_o rise_v 3._o and_o friendly_a salutation_n of_o daniel_n then_o follow_v the_o three_o part_n daniel_n deliverance_n with_o the_o manner_n thereof_o see_v afterward_o quest_n 23._o and_o the_o effect_n which_o follow_v which_o be_v four_o 1._o the_o king_n rejoice_v v_o 23._o 2._o daniel_n be_v deliver_v without_o any_o hurt_n at_o all_o v_o 23._o 3._o his_o accuser_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n the_o manner_n be_v express_v who_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n and_o how_o it_o befall_v they_o their_o bone_n be_v break_v in_o piece_n before_o they_o come_v at_o the_o ground_n v_o 24._o 4._o the_o king_n decree_v concern_v the_o worship_n of_o daniel_n god_n the_o part_n and_o order_n where_o of_o see_v qu._n 29._o 2._o the_o text_n with_o the_o diverse_a reading_n 1._o and_o it_o please_v before_o c._o darius_n to_o set_v and_o he_o set_v c._o over_o the_o kingdom_n a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o governor_n which_o shall_v be_v over_o the_o in_o the._n l._n c._n whole_a kingdom_n 2._o and_o over_o these_o he_o set_v three_o ruler_n of_o who_o daniel_n be_v the_o chief_a one_o v._o l._n s._n g._n b._n but_o one_o signify_o here_o the_o first_o as_o the_o next_o verse_n show_v that_o the_o governor_n may_v give_v account_n unto_o they_o and_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v no_o damage_n not_o be_v trouble_v l._n but_o the_o word_n nazik_n signify_v rather_o to_o sustain_v loss_n than_o trouble_n 3._o now_o daniel_n be_v prefer_v excel_v v._o be_v superior_a l._n above_o the_o ruler_n and_o governor_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n l._n b._n ad_fw-la be_v excellent_a in_o he_o and_o the_o king_n think_v to_o set_v he_o over_o the_o whole_a realm_n 4._o wherefore_o the_o ruler_n and_o governor_n fight_v be_v seeking_z c._o to_o find_v occasion_n against_o daniel_n on_o the_o behalf_n on_o the_o side_n c._n in_o the_o business_n v._o in_o the_o administration_n i._o of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o they_o can_v find_v none_o occasion_n not_o fault_n for_o he_o be_v so_o faithful_a that_o there_o be_v no_o blame_n nor_o fault_n find_v in_o he_o 5._o then_o say_v these_o man_n we_o shall_v find_v no_o occasion_n against_o this_o to_o this_o c._n l._n daniel_n except_o we_o find_v it_o against_o he_o concern_v in_o c._o the_o law_n of_o his_o god_n 6._o then_o these_o ruler_n and_o governor_n go_v together_o crafty_o assail_v v._o l._n throng_a tumultuous_o a._n so_o the_o word_n pagash_n signify_v as_o psalm_n 2._o 1._o to_o the_o king_n and_o say_v thus_o unto_o he_o king_n darius_n live_v for_o ever_o 7._o all_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o officer_n and_o governor_n the_o counsellor_n and_o duke_n have_v consult_v together_o to_o make_v a_o regal_a statute_n a_o statute_n of_o the_o king_n c._n for_o the_o king_n g._n b._n and_o to_o confirm_v a_o edict_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v ask_v a_o petition_n of_o any_o god_n or_o man_n for_o thirty_o day_n save_v of_o thou_o the_o king_n i._n of_o thou_o o_o king_n v._o l._n b._n g._n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n 8._o now_o o_o king_n ratisie_n the_o edict_n and_o sign_n seal_n g._n b._n describe_v or_o write_v c._o the_o writing_n that_o it_o be_v not_o change_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o mede_n and_o persian_n which_o fail_v not_o pass_v n●t_a c._o 9_o therefore_o king_n darius_n sign_v the_o writing_n and_o the_o decree_n 10._o now_o when_o daniel_n understand_v that_o the_o writing_n be_v sign_v that_o 〈◊〉_d seal_v the_o writing_n b._n g._n he_o go_v into_o his_o house_n and_o his_o window_n be_v open_a in_o his_o chamber_n the_o word_n signify_v a_o upper_a chamber_n polan_n towards_o jerusalem_n he_o three_o time_n in_o the_o day_n kneel_v upon_o his_o knee_n and_o pray_v and_o praise_v confess_v c._o before_o his_o god_n as_o he_o do_v aforetime_o 11._o then_o these_o man_n throng_v together_o and_o find_v daniel_n pray_v and_o make_v supplication_n
interpretando_fw-la edictum_fw-la by_o interpret_n his_o decree_n and_o seek_v to_o excuse_n daniel_n lyran._n but_o he_o can_v not_o prevail_v thus_o far_o the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v commend_v in_o labour_v for_o the_o innocent_a 2._o but_o in_o two_o thing_n he_o fail_v on_o the_o one_o side_n metuit_fw-la discrimen_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o be_v afraid_a lest_o the_o noble_n shall_v have_v conspire_v against_o he_o if_o he_o have_v resist_v they_o he_o dare_v not_o infringe_v their_o law_n at_o the_o first_o 2._o stulto_fw-la pudore_fw-la movetur_fw-la he_o be_v move_v with_o shame_n lest_o he_o may_v be_v note_v of_o inconstancy_n for_o reverse_v his_o law_n calvin_n thus_o herode_fw-la be_v loath_a to_o put_v john_n baptist_n to_o death_n but_o he_o more_o fear_v the_o note_n of_o inconstancy_n with_o those_o which_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n and_o pilate_n will_v have_v deliver_v christ_n but_o he_o fear_v the_o displeasure_n of_o caesar_n as_o the_o jew_n object_n that_o in_o so_o do_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v caesar_n friend_n 3._o yet_o though_o darius_n here_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a prince_n yet_o his_o offence_n be_v no_o so_o great_a as_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o ruler_n for_o he_o lapsus_fw-la est_fw-la infirmitate_fw-la fall_v of_o infirmity_n melancthon_n illi_fw-la accusant_fw-la per_fw-la invidam_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o accuse_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n through_o envy_n oecolamp_n and_o as_o there_o be_v difference_n in_o their_o sin_n so_o the_o event_n be_v diverse_a for_o the_o lord_n have_v mercy_n on_o the_o king_n and_o bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n but_o daniel_n enemy_n be_v destroy_v quest._n 19_o whether_o darius_n may_v not_o have_v break_v this_o decree_n 1._o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o the_o king_n ought_v to_o have_v reverse_a this_o unjust_a law_n whatsoever_o the_o custom_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_a whereby_o the_o innocent_a be_v condemn_v like_v as_o it_o be_v better_a to_o break_v a_o unjust_a oath_n then_o to_o observe_v it_o for_o then_o there_o be_v a_o double_a fault_n commit_v first_o in_o make_v a_o unjust_a oath_n and_o then_o in_o keep_v it_o like_v as_o david_n do_v well_o to_o reverse_v his_o oath_n of_o revenge_n which_o he_o have_v make_v against_o nabal_n and_o herode_fw-la do_v wicked_o in_o perform_v his_o rash_a and_o unaduised_a oath_n in_o kill_a john_n baptist_n pap._n 2._o darius_n then_o bind_v himself_o to_o strict_o to_o his_o law_n therein_o can_v be_v excuse_v 1._o he_o know_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a decree_n and_o against_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 2._o and_o that_o it_o be_v make_v fraudulent_o to_o entrap_v daniel_n 3._o neither_o shall_v he_o have_v be_v draw_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n 4._o and_o though_o his_o noble_n resist_v he_o yet_o where_o he_o can_v not_o by_o argument_n and_o persuasion_n prevail_v he_o shall_v have_v strike_v through_o by_o his_o authority_n polan_n quest._n 20._o whether_o darius_n prayer_n for_o daniel_n be_v of_o faith_n v_o 16._o thy_o god_n who_o thou_o always_o serve_v he_o deliver_v thou_o etc._n etc._n 1._o hierome_n with_o who_o consent_v lyranus_fw-la hugo_n gloss_n ordinar_n do_v here_o note_v quod_fw-la non_fw-la ambigue_n loquor_fw-la sed_fw-la audacter_fw-la &_o confidenter_fw-la that_o darius_n speak_v not_o doubtful_o but_o bold_o and_o confident_o etc._n etc._n and_o this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o he_o pray_v in_o faith_n because_o his_o prayer_n be_v hear_v but_o daniel_n deliverance_n be_v not_o a_o effect_n of_o darius_n prayer_n the_o lord_n have_v respect_n unto_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o to_o daniel_n innocence_n and_o he_o wish_v rather_o that_o god_n shall_v deliver_v he_o then_o affirm_v any_o thing_n as_o junius_n translate_v 2._o there_o appear_v in_o darius_n that_o he_o have_v here_o aliquam_fw-la dei_fw-la cognitionem_fw-la some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o daniel_n osiand_n which_o be_v manifest_a both_o in_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o daniel_n god_n that_o he_o and_o not_o any_o other_o god_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v he_o and_o then_o in_o respect_n of_o daniel_n person_n because_o he_o be_v innocent_a he_o be_v persuade_v god_n will_v deliver_v he_o jun._n 3._o yet_o this_o be_v far_o from_o a_o faithful_a prayer_n 1._o for_o then_o he_o will_v never_o have_v suffer_v a_o innocent_a man_n to_o be_v condemn_v 2._o he_o call_v he_o daniel_n god_n as_o though_o he_o be_v not_o his_o god_n polan_n 3._o if_o he_o have_v pray_v in_o faith_n he_o will_v not_o only_o have_v wish_v well_o unto_o daniel_n but_o have_v endeavour_v by_o all_o his_o power_n to_o do_v he_o good_a for_o not_o good_a word_n but_o good_a work_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n as_o s._n james_n show_v c._n 2._o 16._o bull_v yet_o we_o may_v gather_v non_fw-la omni_fw-la pielate_fw-la vacuum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la regem_fw-la that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o void_a of_o all_o piety_n by_o his_o word_n follow_v when_o he_o thus_o speak_v to_o daniel_n v_o 20._o o_o daniel_n servant_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v not_o thy_o god_n who_o thou_o always_o serve_v able_a to_o deliver_v thou_o from_o the_o lion_n bull_v though_o calvin_n here_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v ●e_n micam_fw-la pietatis_fw-la fuisse_fw-la in_o rege_fw-la that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o crumbe_n of_o piety_n in_o the_o ki●●_n quest._n 21._o v._n 17._o why_o the_o king_n seal_v the_o stone_n with_o his_o own_o seal_n 1._o the_o latin_a interpreter_n read_v he_o seal_v the_o stone_n with_o his_o own_o signet_n and_o the_o signet_n of_o his_o prince_n ne_fw-la quid_fw-la fieret_fw-la contra_fw-la danielem_fw-la lest_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v against_o daniel_n whereupon_o the_o ordin_fw-fr gloss_n note_v follow_v hierome_n de_fw-fr leonibus_fw-la securus_fw-la de_fw-la hominibus_fw-la pertimescit_fw-la the_o king_n be_v out_o of_o fear_n for_o the_o lion_n be_v afraid_a of_o man_n etc._n etc._n he_o be_v afraid_a lest_o any_o of_o his_o enemy_n see_v the_o lion_n to_o do_v daniel_n no_o harm_n may_v have_v practise_v against_o he_o in_o the_o den_n and_o therefore_o he_o seal_v the_o stone_n ne_fw-la introiret_fw-la aliquis_fw-la sine_fw-la scitu_fw-la svo_fw-la lest_o any_o shall_v enter_v without_o his_o privity_n lyran._n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n also_o bullinger_n and_o pelican_n but_o the_o original_n be_v otherwise_o which_o be_v true_o translate_v thus_o that_o the_o purpose_n may_v not_o be_v change_v concern_v daniel_n 2._o therefore_o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o when_o these_o man_n perceive_v when_o daniel_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o den_n that_o the_o lion_n stir_v not_o at_o he_o they_o doubt_v of_o the_o king_n constancy_n lest_o he_o shall_v cause_v daniel_n to_o be_v take_v out_o alive_a or_o that_o some_o other_o of_o his_o friend_n may_v draw_v he_o out_o daniel_n accuser_n cause_n the_o king_n to_o seal_v the_o stone_n and_o they_o not_o trust_v to_o the_o king_n seal_v alone_o put_v to_o their_o own_o seal_n likewise_o jun._n polan_n quest._n 22._o whether_o darius_n be_v true_o convert_v confess_v daniel_n god_n to_o be_v the_o live_a god_n v_o 20._o be_v not_o thy_o god_n who_o thou_o serve_v able_a to_o deliver_v thou_o 1._o hierome_n and_o lyranus_fw-la follow_v he_o think_v that_o the_o king_n do_v not_o speak_v thus_o as_o doubt_v of_o god_n power_n sed_fw-la ambiguam_fw-la sententiam_fw-la temperate_a etc._n etc._n but_o he_o so_o temper_v his_o speech_n that_o when_o daniel_n shall_v come_v forth_o without_o any_o hurt_n the_o more_o credible_a the_o thing_n be_v tanto_fw-la adversus_fw-la principes_fw-la iustior_fw-la sit_fw-la indignatio_fw-la so_o much_o the_o more_o just_a his_o indignation_n may_v be_v against_o the_o ruler_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o their_o opinion_n seem_v to_o be_v that_o darius_n as_o trust_v in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n speak_v confident_o as_o a_o man_n assure_v that_o daniel_n be_v deliver_v and_o for_o further_a strengthen_v of_o this_o opinion_n it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o darius_n here_o confess_v the_o live_a god_n as_o believe_v in_o the_o only_a true_a god_n but_o to_o confess_v one_o only_a god_n man_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o diverse_a of_o the_o gentile_n so_o acknowledge_v this_o than_o be_v no_o firm_a argument_n of_o his_o conversion_n 2._o though_o darius_n speak_v not_o thus_o as_o incredulous_a sed_fw-la inter_fw-la spem_fw-la metumque_fw-la haerebat_fw-la but_o do_v stick_v as_o it_o be_v between_o hope_n and_o fear_n osiand_n yet_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o speech_n show_v that_o he_o somewhat_o doubt_v of_o god_n power_n habuit_fw-la aliquid_fw-la spei_fw-la sed_fw-la coniectum_fw-la cum_fw-la dubitatione_n he_o have_v some_o hope_n but_o join_v with_o doubtfulness_n and_o infirmity_n bull_v beside_o he_o confess_v
the_o temple_n unto_o cyrus_n he_o count_v 52._o year_n paulus_n burgensis_n thus_o confute_v this_o assertion_n because_o none_o be_v simple_o in_o scripture_n call_v anoint_v but_o those_o which_o be_v anoint_v either_o with_o material_a oil_n as_o the_o king_n and_o priest_n or_o with_o spiritual_a as_o the_o prophet_n but_o cyrus_n be_v neither_o of_o these_o way_n anoint_v and_o whereas_o this_o place_n be_v urge_v of_o cyrus_n he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o cyrus_n but_o of_o the_o messiah_n this_o answer_n of_o burgen_n be_v very_o weak_a for_o in_o that_o the_o prophet_n say_v cyrus_n his_o anointed_n what_o be_v more_o evident_a then_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o cyrus_n be_v express_v by_o name_n pererius_n answer_v also_o be_v unsufficient_a that_o cyrus_n be_v long_o before_o the_o begin_n of_o these_o week_n whereas_o it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v that_o the_o week_n begin_v in_o cyrus_n time_n 1._o thus_o therefore_o be_v this_o opinion_n rather_o refell_v 1._o because_o he_o himself_o count_v 52._o week_n unto_o cyrus_n which_o make_v above_o 7._o week_n of_o year_n burgen_n 2._o afterwards_o by_o messiah_n that_o shall_v be_v slay_v he_o understand_v agrippa_n king_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o he_o change_v the_o person_n take_v the_o messiah_n for_o two_o diverse_a person_n whereas_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o messiah_n lyran._n 3._o he_o be_v call_v messiah_n the_o governor_n or_o principal_a for_o so_o the_o word_n nagid_a signify_v but_o none_o be_v call_v the_o principal_a messiah_n but_o only_a christ_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n speak_v isay._n 55._o 4._o i_o have_v give_v he_o for_o a_o witness_n to_o the_o people_n for_o a_o prince_n etc._n etc._n the_o word_n be_v nagid_a burgen_n 2._o some_o by_o the_o messiah_n understand_v nehemiah_n as_o ab._n ezra_n some_o zorobabel_n some_o jehoshua_n the_o high_a priest_n as_o r._n levi_n ben_n gerso●_n but_o these_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 7._o week_n at_o the_o return_n of_o the_o captivity_n ezr●_n 2._o 2._o it_o can_v be_v therefore_o say_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v 7._o week_n unto_o they_o and_o again_o the_o office_n of_o this_o messiah_n be_v to_o finish_v sin_n and_o reconcile_v iniquity_n which_o none_o of_o these_o can_v do_v 3._o some_o by_o messiah_n take_v the_o singular_a for_o the_o plural_a do_v understand_v the_o anoint_a governor_n who_o eusebius_n take_v to_o be_v the_o macchabee_n who_o be_v both_o priest_n and_o king_n but_o unto_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v above_o 7._o week_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 70._o week_n wheresoever_o they_o begin_v they_o for_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o macchabee_n begin_v above_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n 4._o m._n lively_a therefore_o in_o his_o persian_a monarchy_n p._n 205._o take_v the_o word_n messiah_n somewhat_o more_o large_o for_o the_o chief_a ruler_n and_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n commonwealth_n unto_o the_o begin_n of_o who_o settle_a estate_n be_v count_v 7._o week_n for_o from_o the_o 2._o of_o darius_n nothus_fw-la when_o the_o temple_n begin_v to_o be_v re-edify_v of_o who_o reign_n there_o remain_v 17._o year_n to_o the_o 32._o of_o arrashasht_fw-mi be_v just_a 49._o year_n in_o who_o 32._o year_n the_o city_n be_v build_v and_o set_v form_n of_o government_n establish_v nehemiah_n return_v unto_o the_o king_n nehem._n 13._o 6._o of_o this_o his_o opinion_n he_o yield_v two_o special_a reason_n 1._o from_o the_o hebrew_n point_n athnah_n after_o 7._o week_n which_o be_v a_o perfect_a distinction_n do_v suspend_v it_o from_o the_o sentence_n follow_v so_o that_o he_o will_v have_v these_o 7._o week_n to_o the_o messiah_n take_v by_o themselves_o and_o not_o to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o 62._o week_n follow_v 2._o these_o two_o thing_n begin_v together_o the_o city_n build_v and_o the_o anoint_a governor_n thereof_o as_o samballat_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o nehemiah_n join_v they_o both_o together_o nehem._n 6._o 6._o thou_o and_o the_o jew_n think_v to_o rebel_v for_o the_o which_o cause_n thou_o build_v ihe_v wall_n and_o thou_o will_v be_v the_o king_n thereof_o to_o this_o purpose_n m._n lively_n p._n 209._o answ._n 1._o oecolampadius_n to_o that_o objection_n of_o the_o point_n make_v this_o answer_n we_o have_v rather_o follow_v in_o this_o place_n the_o greek_n and_o latin_n quam_fw-la judaeos_fw-la pro_fw-la sua_fw-la libidine_fw-la punctum_fw-la constituentes_fw-la than_o the_o jew_n set_v the_o point_n according_a to_o their_o pleasure_n but_o this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a answer_n for_o if_o we_o make_v question_n of_o the_o hebrew_n prick_v and_o point_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o rather_o answer_v with_o polanus_fw-la that_o although_o the_o perfect_a distinction_n athnah_n be_v there_o set_v yet_o the_o rest_n must_v be_v join_v in_o sense_n as_o the_o angel_n at_o the_o first_o make_v but_o one_o whole_a number_n of_o 70._o week_n 2._o it_o follow_v not_o because_o when_o the_o city_n be_v build_v the_o settle_a government_n begin_v that_o therefore_o the_o governor_n be_v this_o messiah_n and_o if_o nehemiah_n be_v the_o first_o governor_n as_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v after_o the_o build_n of_o the_o city_n to_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o government_n there_o be_v not_o 7._o week_n of_o year_n see_v he_o be_v send_v in_o the_o 20._o of_o artaxerxes_n and_o there_o continue_v to_o the_o 32._o year_n when_o according_a to_o his_o account_n the_o 49._o year_n expire_v 5._o wherefore_o the_o best_a and_o most_o receive_a interpretation_n be_v that_o by_o messiah_n here_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v our_o bless_a saviour_n christ_n jesus_n as_o it_o may_v thus_o appear_v 1._o one_o and_o the_o same_o messiah_n be_v speak_v of_o through_o this_o pprophecy_n but_o the_o messiah_n which_o shall_v be_v slay_v and_o confirm_v the_o covenant_n for_o one_o week_n be_v christ_n therefore_o this_o messiah_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v christ._n 2._o the_o week_n before_o speak_v of_o to_o finish_v sin_n and_o reconcile_v iniquity_n can_v only_o be_v perform_v by_o christ._n 6._o some_o do_v understand_v by_o messiah_n christ_n and_o make_v this_o the_o sense_n that_o 7._o week_n that_o be_v 49._o year_n he_o shall_v be_v their_o governor_n and_o afterward_o cast_v they_o off_o but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o during_o those_o 7._o week_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o protection_n of_o that_o people_n but_o many_o year_n after_o also_o 7._o some_o object_n that_o in_o that_o messiah_n be_v call_v here_o a_o captain_n or_o governor_n if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o christ_n it_o will_v extenuate_v his_o dignity_n m._n calvin_n answer_v that_o therein_o the_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v forth_o who_o be_v a_o captain_n over_o all_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o this_o title_n be_v give_v also_o to_o king_n and_o to_o the_o chief_a earthly_a state_n as_o david_n be_v call_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o people_n 2._o sam._n 3._o 2._o and_o hezekiah_n 2._o king_n 20._o 5._o pererius_n add_v further_a that_o this_o title_n nagid_a captain_n prince_n be_v particular_o give_v unto_o christ_n as_o isay._n 55._o 4._o i_o have_v give_v he_o for_o a_o prince_n or_o captain_n for_o he_o be_v our_o captain_n 1._o to_o lead_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a example_n of_o life_n 2._o in_o teach_v the_o way_n unto_o salvation_n 3._o in_o gather_v together_o his_o church_n and_o conduct_v they_o to_o eternal_a life_n perer._n lib._n 10._o quest_n 17._o quest._n 61._o v._n 25._o the_o street_n shall_v be_v build_v again_o in_o a_o troublesome_a time_n how_o this_o be_v fullfil_v 1._o some_o do_v refer_v this_o troublesome_a time_n to_o the_o 62._o week_n immediate_o before_o speak_v of_o which_o contain_v 434._o year_n to_o be_v count_v unto_o the_o messiah_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 7._o week_n and_o then_o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o during_o all_o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o time_n the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v have_v much_o ●●●uble_n so_o jun._n polan_n and_o m._n lively_n out_o of_o saadiah_n give_v this_o sense_n pag._n 172._o that_o jerusalem_n be_v build_v shall_v continue_v 434._o year_n before_o the_o desolation_n but_o in_o that_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o build_v the_o street_n again_o that_o be_v the_o city_n the_o word_n seem_v to_o have_v special_a reference_n to_o these_o troublesome_a time_n in_o the_o first_o 7._o week_n wherein_o the_o work_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o city_n be_v intermit_v 2._o some_o by_o the_o straightness_n of_o time_n understand_v the_o short_a time_n wherein_o the_o city_n be_v build_v
love_n i_o be_v nothing_o pintus_fw-la 3._o but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v the_o faithful_a servant_n and_o true_a prophet_n of_o god_n who_o have_v both_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n with_o the_o understanding_n thereof_o and_o be_v also_o in_o god_n favour_n and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n such_o a_o one_o be_v daniel_n quest._n 4_o v_o 1._o why_o daniel_n make_v mention_n of_o his_o name_n belteshazzar_n what_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o name_n be_v be_v show_v before_o c._n 1._o quest_n 28._o but_o daniel_n name_v himself_o here_o belteshazzar_n for_o these_o cause_n 1._o voluit_fw-la hoc_fw-la vaticinium_fw-la celebre_fw-la esse_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la nationes_fw-la he_o will_v have_v this_o pprophecy_n famous_a among_o all_o nation_n where_o he_o be_v know_v rather_o by_o the_o name_n of_o belteshazzar_n then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o daniel_n calvin_n 2._o by_o this_o mean_n though_o he_o be_v call_v by_o a_o strange_a name_n yet_o he_o will_v make_v it_o know_v se_fw-la non_fw-la alienum_fw-la esse_fw-la à_fw-la populo_fw-la dei_fw-la that_o he_o be_v not_o enstrange_v from_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o continue_v still_o in_o their_o communion_n 3._o and_o hereby_o also_o daniel_n intimate_v that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o man_n unto_o who_o the_o former_a vision_n be_v show_v and_o the_o understanding_n of_o secret_a thing_n and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v this_o vision_n be_v receive_v with_o great_a credit_n and_o authority_n polan_n quest._n 5._o v._n 2._o why_o daniel_n be_v so_o long_o in_o heaviness_n 1._o theodoret_n think_v this_o be_v one_o cause_n thereof_o because_o all_o of_o the_o jew_n have_v liberty_n to_o return_v yet_o many_o of_o they_o be_v in_o love_n with_o the_o pleasure_n of_o babylon_n neglect_v in_o patriam_fw-la reditu_fw-la tanto_fw-la beneficio_fw-la uti_fw-la noluerunt_fw-la neglect_v to_o return_v into_o their_o country_n will_v not_o use_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n but_o if_o this_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n daniel_n will_v not_o have_v defer_v the_o time_n of_o mourn_v so_o long_o for_o this_o backwardness_n of_o the_o people_n be_v know_v in_o the_o 1._o year_n of_o cyrus_n when_o the_o people_n have_v licence_n to_o return_v 2._o an_o other_o cause_n of_o daniel_n mourning_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v the_o remembrance_n and_o consideration_n of_o so_o many_o heavy_a thing_n as_o be_v foreshow_v he_o in_o time_n to_o come_v to_o befall_v his_o people_n 3._o as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o to_o what_o blindness_n and_o obstinacy_n his_o people_n shall_v grow_v as_o to_o put_v to_o death_n the_o messiah_n perer._n but_o if_o either_o of_o these_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n daniel_n will_v not_o have_v put_v off_o his_o mourning_n so_o long_o for_o the_o first_o be_v signify_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o 3._o of_o balthasar_n c._n 8._o and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o 1._o of_o darius_n c._n 9_o but_o this_o mourning_n of_o daniel_n be_v in_o the_o 3._o year_n of_o cyrus_n two_o year_n after_o 4._o therefore_o this_o indeed_o be_v the_o cause_n the_o people_n which_o be_v return_v have_v begin_v to_o re-edify_v the_o temple_n and_o present_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o cambyses_n cyrus_n be_v occupy_v in_o war_n abroad_o this_o hard_a news_n come_v to_o daniel_n in_o persia_n and_o therefore_o he_o mourn_v entreat_v the_o lord_n that_o the_o business_n may_v go_v forward_o jun._n polan_n oecolampad_n pellic._n with_o other_o quest._n 6._o of_o the_o time_n that_o daniel_n mourn_v which_o be_v three_o week_n of_o day_n 1._o this_o be_v add_v of_o day_n by_o way_n of_o distinction_n because_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o week_n of_o year_n polan_n 2._o some_o think_v he_o mourn_v 3._o week_n to_o signify_v the_o trinity_n gloss_n interlin_fw-mi but_o that_o be_v too_o curious_a 3._o some_o because_o the_o people_n have_v leave_n to_o return_v in_o the_o first_o of_o cyrus_n have_v defer_v their_o journey_n until_o this_o 3._o year_n and_o therefore_o daniel_n mourn_v 3._o week_n for_o every_o year_n a_o week_n lest_o this_o negligence_n shall_v have_v be_v lay_v unto_o the_o people_n charge_n hugo_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o story_n ezra_n 2._o where_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o build_v the_o temple_n in_o the_o second_o year_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o put_v off_o their_o return_n unto_o the_o three_o year_n 4._o further_o hugo_n have_v a_o other_o conceit_n that_o as_o daniel_n fast_v 21._o day_n before_o the_o angel_n appear_v which_o represent_v christ_n so_o the_o church_n have_v the_o like_a use_n to_o fast_v 21._o day_n before_o the_o advent_a but_o such_o superstitious_a custom_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o either_o precept_n or_o example_n in_o scripture_n superstition_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o founder_n of_o such_o invention_n 5._o this_o than_o be_v the_o cause_n daniel_n herein_o show_v his_o constancy_n not_o that_o sorrow_n be_v value_v before_o god_n by_o the_o length_n of_o time_n but_o daniel_n continue_v in_o fast_v and_o prayer_n expect_v still_o some_o comfortable_a answer_n from_o god_n he_o therefore_o give_v not_o over_o until_o he_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n gracious_o incline_v unto_o his_o prayer_n jun._n 6._o and_o in_o that_o he_o fast_v 21._o day_n in_o the_o 1._o month_n the_o 1._o day_n which_o be_v the_o new_a moon_n which_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o law_n to_o keep_v with_o rejoice_v seem_v to_o be_v except_v jun._n 7._o and_o whereas_o within_o this_o time_n they_o use_v to_o keep_v the_o passeover_n which_o be_v a_o time_n also_o of_o rejoice_v it_o seem_v that_o in_o the_o captivity_n that_o solemnity_n be_v omit_v and_o so_o think_v r._n levi_n whereupon_o theodoret_n reprove_v the_o jew_n in_o his_o time_n who_o use_v to_o celebrate_v the_o pasch_fw-mi with_o all_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n thereto_o belong_v wheresoever_o they_o be_v whereas_o by_o moses_n law_n it_o be_v only_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o place_n which_o the_o lord_n shall_v choose_v quest._n 7._o of_o daniel_n abstinency_n v_o 3._o i_o eat_v no_o pleasant_a bread_n in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v call_v bread_n of_o desry_n which_o theodoret_n take_v to_o have_v be_v common_a bread_n because_o it_o be_v desire_v of_o all_o but_o it_o rather_o signify_v some_o fine_a pleasant_a bread_n such_o as_o whitebread_n or_o manchet_n be_v to_o brown_a vatab._n for_o afterward_o he_o speak_v of_o wine_n which_o be_v a_o pleasant_a and_o principal_a drink_n from_o the_o which_o also_o daniel_n abstain_v it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o for_o 3._o week_n he_o do_v eat_v no_o bread_n at_o all_o 2._o now_o in_o that_o daniel_n the_o space_n of_o 3._o week_n refrain_v the_o drink_n of_o wine_n and_o eat_v of_o pleasant_a bread_n or_o meat_n it_o seem_v that_o before_o he_o use_v they_o so_o that_o daniel_n abstinency_n when_o he_o do_v choose_v at_o the_o first_o to_o be_v feed_v only_o with_o bread_n make_v of_o pulse_n c._n 1._o seem_v only_o to_o have_v be_v for_o a_o time_n which_o some_o think_v be_v for_o that_o he_o be_v now_o in_o year_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a he_o shall_v use_v such_o a_o spare_v and_o course_n diet_n as_o he_o do_v before_o or_o now_o he_o be_v at_o his_o own_o find_n and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v force_v to_o eat_v any_o meat_n that_o be_v pollute_v but_o may_v provide_v such_o as_o he_o think_v best_o himself_o lyran._n perer._n but_o this_o rather_o be_v the_o cause_n as_o m._n calvin_n well_o note_v that_o now_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a danger_n as_o then_o in_o eat_v delicate_a meat_n for_o than_o they_o be_v use_v as_o bait_n to_o corrupt_v daniel_n and_o win_v he_o from_o his_o faith_n and_o religion_n but_o afterward_o daniel_n elapsus_fw-la è_fw-la diaboli_fw-la &_o regis_fw-la insidijs_fw-la have_v escape_v the_o snare_n of_o satan_n and_o of_o the_o king_n use_v great_a liberty_n quest._n 8._o of_o the_o custom_n and_o use_n of_o anoint_v which_o daniel_n also_o forbear_v hierome_n here_o write_v that_o the_o persian_n in_o stead_n of_o bath_n use_v to_o anoint_v themselves_o ye●_n to_o besmear_v themselves_o all_o over_o with_o ointment_n as_o pliny_n write_v lib._n 13._o c._n 1._o which_o they_o do_v both_o to_o defend_v themselves_o from_o the_o intemperate_a heat_n and_o to_o keep_v their_o body_n in_o health_n lyran._n this_o custom_n of_o anoint_v be_v very_o ancient_a pliny_n in_o the_o same_o place_n say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o use_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o trojan_a warte_z but_o that_o be_v not_o so_o for_o diodorus_n siculus_n lib._n 2._o c._n 1._o report_v how_o a_o king_n of_o egypt_n call_v miridies_n allow_v unto_o his_o wife_n for_o ointment_n and_o other_o ornament_n of_o her_o body_n
see_v a_o light_a confuse_o but_o distinct_o they_o see_v not_o he_o which_o be_v both_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o paul_n 4._o pintus_fw-la think_v that_o they_o see_v in_o deed_n the_o angel_n but_o perceive_v not_o what_o he_o say_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v say_v not_o to_o have_v see_v the_o vision_n so_o also_o lyran._n but_o the_o text_n evident_o show_v that_o they_o do_v not_o see_v the_o vision_n at_o all_o but_o daniel_n only_o see_v it_o they_o hear_v the_o sound_n and_o therewith_o be_v astonish_v and_o flee_v away_o but_o they_o see_v nothing_o 5._o calvin_n think_v that_o daniel_n be_v in_o his_o chamber_n at_o this_o time_n and_o in_o his_o spirit_n only_o by_o the_o river_n and_o so_o fall_v into_o a_o trance_n the_o rest_n be_v strike_v with_o a_o terror_n but_o if_o daniel_n in_o spirit_n only_o have_v see_v this_o vision_n absent_a it_o be_v needless_a to_o say_v that_o the_o rest_n see_v it_o not_o for_o how_o can_v they_o see_v a_o thing_n absent_a 6._o in_o that_o daniel_n have_v company_n and_o witness_n present_a it_o so_o sell_v out_o by_o god_n providence_n that_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o vision_n which_o daniel_n afterward_o be_v to_o communicate_v to_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v doubt_v of_o polan_n 16._o quest._n the_o cause_n of_o daniel_n great_a fear_n v_o 8._o there_o remain_v no_o strength_n in_o i_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o great_a fear_n when_o they_o receive_v any_o vision_n as_o jeremie_n say_v c._n 23._o 9_o my_o heart_n break_v within_o i_o etc._n etc._n for_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o for_o his_o holy_a word_n so_o habac._n 3._o 2._o o_o lord_n i_o have_v hear_v thy_o voice_n and_o be_v afraid_a likewise_o dan._n c._n 7._o 28._o my_o cogitation_n trouble_v i_o and_o my_o countenance_n change_v in_o i_o etc._n etc._n 8._o 27._o i_o daniel_n be_v strike_v and_o sick_a certain_a day_n thus_o be_v the_o holy_a prophet_n affect_v in_o these_o vision_n now_o these_o reason_n may_v be_v allege_v of_o this_o their_o fear_n 1._o the_o great_a majesty_n and_o glory_n which_o appear_v unto_o they_o far_o exceed_v man_n capacity_n make_v they_o afraid_a and_o abate_v their_o strength_n as_o this_o be_v a_o most_o glorious_a sight_n which_o here_o be_v show_v to_o daniel_n if_o we_o can_v not_o behold_v the_o sun_n without_o dazzle_v of_o the_o eye_n how_o much_o less_o be_v man_n able_a to_o behold_v such_o excellent_a brightness_n 2._o the_o heavy_a thing_n which_o be_v declare_v in_o those_o vision_n do_v also_o terrify_v they_o as_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o calamity_n and_o misery_n which_o shall_v befall_v the_o people_n of_o god_n cast_v daniel_n into_o a_o sick_a fit_n c._n 8._o 3._o it_o be_v the_o quality_n and_o condition_n of_o spiritual_a contemplation_n that_o the_o more_o the_o mind_n be_v intent_n thereupon_o the_o less_o vigour_n and_o strength_n the_o body_n have_v all_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n bend_v and_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o gregory_n observe_v well_o cum_fw-la ad_fw-la virtutem_fw-la dei_fw-la mens_fw-la astringitur_fw-la à_fw-la propria_fw-la fortitudine_fw-la caro_fw-la lassatur_fw-la 30._o when_o the_o mind_n be_v bend_v towards_o god_n the_o strength_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v abate_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o he_o resemble_v fit_o to_o jaacobs_n halt_v after_o he_o have_v wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n 4._o by_o this_o mean_n man_n see_v his_o own_o infirmity_n and_o the_o great_a evidence_n he_o have_v of_o god_n power_n and_o glory_n the_o more_o he_o see_v into_o his_o own_o estate_n and_o feel_v his_o own_o want_n as_o abraham_n be_v admit_v to_o that_o familiar_a conference_n with_o god_n gen._n 18._o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v dust_n and_o ash_n moses_n who_o think_v himself_o some_o body_n before_o as_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o egyptian_n yet_o after_o he_o have_v talk_v with_o god_n he_o then_o begin_v to_o see_v his_o imperfection_n that_o he_o be_v flow_v of_o speech_n exod._n 4._o 10._o and_o the_o prophet_n isai_n after_o he_o have_v that_o vision_n c._n 6._o cry_v out_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o pollute_a lip_n to_o this_o purpose_n gregor_n homil_n 8._o in_o ezechiel_n 17._o quest._n who_o hand_n it_o be_v that_o touch_v daniel_n 1._o junius_n in_o his_o commentary_n by_o this_o hand_n understand_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o the_o which_o we_o be_v comfort_v as_o ezekiel_n say_v c._n 1._o 3._o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o i_o by_o the_o river_n chebar_v but_o this_o thing_n be_v not_o mystical_o but_o histotical_o do_n yet_o this_o hand_n be_v symbolum_fw-la virtutis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la a_o symbol_n or_o sign_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n polan_n 2._o some_o take_v this_o for_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o appear_v in_o that_o glorious_a manner_n unto_o daniel_n before_o hierome_n pintus_fw-la calvin_n genevens_n but_o it_o be_v show_v before_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o angel_n which_o there_o appear_v but_o christ_n himself_o 3._o lyranus_fw-la have_v this_o conceit_n that_o the_o same_o angel_n touch_v daniel_n as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o man_n hand_n but_o in_o a_o other_o shape_n than_o he_o appear_v at_o the_o first_o for_o the_o angel_n can_v easy_o change_v their_o shape_n but_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o suppose_v that_o in_o the_o same_o vision_n the_o same_o angel_n shall_v assume_v a_o diverse_a shape_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o the_o like_a can_v be_v show_v in_o scripture_n 4._o some_o think_v that_o this_o be_v christ_n who_o touch_v daniel_n lip_n and_o this_o polanus_fw-la will_v confirm_v by_o these_o two_o reason_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v god_n that_o use_v at_o other_o time_n to_o touch_v the_o prophet_n lip_n and_o to_o strengthen_v they_o as_o jerem._n 1._o 9_o and_o revel_v 1._o 17._o 2._o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v like_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n v_o 16._o and_o so_o christ_n be_v describe_v c._n 7._o 13._o one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n answ._n 1._o true_a it_o be_v that_o god_n only_o give_v strength_n and_o utterance_n but_o the_o angel_n also_o may_v be_v as_o minister_n of_o god_n work_n though_o they_o do_v it_o not_o by_o their_o own_o power_n as_o gabriel_n touch_v daniel_n and_o strengthen_v he_o c._n 8._o 18._o and_o polanus_fw-la himself_o upon_o the_o 18._o v._n say_v that_o the_o angel_n tanquam_fw-la administer_v dei_fw-la as_o god_n minister_n do_v strengthen_v daniel_n 2._o v._n 18._o he_o say_v one_o like_o the_o appearance_n of_o man_n touch_v i_o there_o he_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v before_o by_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n for_o not_o only_a christ_n appear_v in_o vision_n as_o a_o man_n but_o the_o angel_n also_o as_o gabriel_n c._n 8._o 15._o appear_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n and_o c._n 9_o 21._o he_o be_v call_v the_o man_n gabriel_n 5._o therefore_o i_o subscribe_v to_o junius_n in_o his_o annotation_n that_o this_o be_v the_o angel_n that_o touch_v daniel_n because_o the_o same_o that_o speak_v touch_v as_o may_v appear_v v_o 11._o 19_o and_o hierome_n say_v that_o the_o angel_n touch_v he_o with_o a_o man_n hand_n ut_fw-la svi_fw-la generis_fw-la corpus_fw-la aspiciens_fw-la that_o see_v a_o body_n of_o his_o own_o kind_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a but_o the_o arm_n which_o christ_n appear_v with_o be_v as_o polish_a brass_n and_o therefore_o not_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o daniel_n will_v have_v be_v more_o afraid_a to_o have_v be_v touch_v with_o such_o glorious_a hand_n so_o that_o hereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o hand_n which_o touch_v daniel_n be_v a_o ordinary_a man_n hand_n it_o be_v not_o then_o the_o hand_n of_o that_o glorious_a body_n which_o appear_v before_o v_o 4._o 18._o quest._n why_o daniel_n prayer_n be_v hear_v at_o the_o first_o yet_o the_o angel_n come_v be_v defer_v one_o and_o twenty_o day_n v_o 12._o in_o that_o the_o angel_n meet_v with_o a_o secret_a objection_n and_o vouchsafe_v therein_o to_o satisfy_v daniel_n mind_n therein_o the_o lord_n singular_a mercy_n appear_v towards_o his_o servant_n for_o daniel_n may_v have_v thus_o think_v after_o the_o angel_n have_v tell_v he_o that_o his_o prayer_n be_v hear_v the_o very_a first_o day_n that_o he_o humble_v himself_o why_o the_o angel_n come_v not_o till_o now_o which_o be_v three_o week_n after_o to_o this_o therefore_o the_o angel_n make_v answer_v show_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o stay_n 1._o hierome_n make_v this_o the_o cause_n data_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la moram_fw-la occasio_fw-la amplius_fw-la deprecandi_fw-la deum_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o this_o
stay_n occasion_n be_v give_v to_o daniel_n the_o more_o earnest_o to_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o effectual_o be_v hear_v etc._n etc._n this_o indeed_o be_v the_o use_n that_o daniel_n make_v of_o this_o stay_n still_o continue_v in_o prayer_n and_o not_o give_v over_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n which_o keep_v the_o angel_n from_o come_v 2._o the_o ordinary_a gloss_n add_v further_a that_o when_o daniel_n begin_v to_o pray_v the_o angel_n take_v occasion_n and_o go_v into_o god_n presence_n pro_fw-la re_fw-la oraturus_fw-la to_o pray_v for_o thou_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o occupy_v the_o angel_n but_o the_o text_n be_v i_o be_o come_v for_o thy_o word_n he_o come_v forth_o as_o send_v from_o god_n he_o do_v not_o go_v to_o god_n neither_o need_v daniel_n the_o mediation_n of_o a_o angel_n in_o his_o prayer_n he_o have_v a_o sufficient_a mediator_n beside_o even_o michael_n christ_n jesus_n the_o prince_n of_o his_o church_n 3._o pererius_n add_v further_a that_o this_o be_v a_o other_o cause_n of_o this_o stay_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v what_o a_o hard_a thing_n daniel_n entreat_v for_o namely_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v yet_o in_o captivity_n not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n with_o god_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o sin_n and_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o people_n which_o hinder_v this_o work_n but_o these_o be_v man_n conjecture_n the_o angel_n afterward_o express_v the_o very_a cause_n which_o be_v none_o of_o these_o allege_v 4._o osiander_n thus_o write_v that_o while_o the_o good_a angel_n resist_v satan_n who_o he_o understand_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o persia_n aliquot_fw-la dies_fw-la in_o deliberationibus_fw-la elabuntur_fw-la certain_a day_n pass_v in_o deliberation_n but_o the_o angel_n need_v not_o any_o such_o time_n to_o consult_v and_o deliberate_v of_o their_o business_n as_o man_n do_v their_o counsel_n be_v always_o ready_a without_o debate_v and_o their_o execution_n speedy_a without_o opposition_n 5._o oecoliampadius_fw-la allege_v out_o of_o chrysostome_n a_o other_o cause_n of_o this_o let_v to_o show_v unto_o the_o prophet_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o ask_v thing_n which_o be_v not_o lawful_a and_o forbid_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v return_v which_o benefit_n they_o be_v unworthy_a of_o but_o this_o petition_n of_o daniel_n be_v ground_v upon_o god_n promise_n that_o the_o people_n shall_v return_v after_o 70._o year_n captivity_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a 6._o the_o angel_n therefore_o show_v whereabout_o he_o be_v hinder_v these_o 21._o day_n he_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o persia_n to_o stay_v the_o proceed_n of_o they_o which_o have_v hinder_v the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o intend_v to_o work_v yet_o further_o mischief_n against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o therein_o daniel_n have_v his_o desire_n for_o from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o he_o pray_v forward_o the_o angel_n be_v occupy_v in_o the_o defend_n and_o protect_v of_o the_o church_n calvin_n 19_o quest._n what_o it_o be_v that_o daniel_n pray_v for_o and_o how_o he_o be_v hear_v 1._o some_o think_v that_o daniel_n here_o pray_v for_o the_o return_n of_o the_o people_n out_o of_o captivity_n which_o be_v grant_v by_o cyrus_n sed_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la magna_fw-la disceptatione_n but_o not_o without_o great_a disceptation_n and_o opposition_n the_o devil_n interpose_v himself_o to_o hinder_v this_o business_n but_o the_o people_n return_v out_o of_o captivity_n two_o year_n before_o this_o in_o the_o first_o of_o cyrus_n for_o which_o thing_n daniel_n have_v pray_v for_o before_o c._n 9_o of_o this_o opinion_n seem_v also_o to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o interlinearie_a gloss_n daniel_n pray_v ut_fw-la captivus_fw-la populus_fw-la sub_fw-la dario_n relaxetur_fw-la that_o the_o captive_a people_n under_o darius_n may_v be_v release_v he_o mean_v darius_n the_o mede_n that_o reign_v with_o cyrus_n by_o who_o as_o hugo_n card_n note_v initum_fw-la fuit_fw-la consilium_fw-la the_o counsel_n first_o be_v begin_v for_o the_o people_n return_n but_o this_o as_o i_o say_v be_v do_v two_o year_n before_o this_o prayer_n of_o daniel_n 2._o lyranus_fw-la think_v that_o although_o this_o liberty_n be_v grant_v by_o cyrus_n yet_o because_o most_o of_o the_o jew_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o captivity_n which_o have_v continue_v from_o the_o first_o take_v of_o the_o city_n in_o jehoiakims_n reign_n 70._o year_n from_o jehoiachin_n carry_v away_o 66._o from_o zedekiah_n 56._o year_n they_o be_v in_o love_n with_o babylon_n where_o they_o have_v possession_n and_o there_o be_v bear_v defer_v their_o go_v two_o year_n and_o so_o daniel_n fear_v ne_fw-la totum_fw-la hoc_fw-la negotium_fw-la de_fw-la eorum_fw-la reditu_fw-la impediretur_fw-la lest_o that_o all_o this_o business_n concern_v their_o return_n may_v be_v hinder_v etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o return_n of_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o captivity_n be_v not_o so_o long_o put_v off_o for_o they_o according_a to_o cyrus_n edict_n return_v in_o the_o first_o year_n and_o in_o the_o second_o year_n the_o seven_o month_n they_o begin_v to_o build_v the_o house_n of_o god_n ezr._n 3._o 1._o 3._o pintus_fw-la think_v that_o daniel_n desire_n be_v to_o know_v what_o shall_v become_v afterward_o of_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n and_o what_o shall_v befall_v the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o though_o these_o thing_n be_v afterward_o reveal_v to_o daniel_n c._n 11._o yet_o that_o be_v not_o it_o for_o the_o which_o daniel_n be_v in_o heaviness_n three_o week_n of_o day_n the_o lord_n grant_v more_o than_o he_o desire_v and_o reveal_v unto_o he_o thing_n to_o come_v as_o c._n 9_o daniel_n only_o pray_v for_o the_o temporal_a deliverance_n of_o the_o people_n but_o he_o be_v iustruct_v also_o by_o the_o angel_n concern_v the_o messiah_n which_o shall_v bring_v spiritual_a deliverance_n and_o redemption_n 4._o pererius_n think_v that_o daniel_n pray_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o remain_v yet_o behind_o may_v return_v also_o into_o their_o country_n but_o daniel_n be_v not_o hear_v in_o this_o for_o many_o of_o they_o be_v entangle_v with_o the_o pleasure_n of_o babylon_n never_o return_v 5._o wherefore_o daniel_n prayer_n be_v this_o rather_o that_o whereas_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o city_n be_v hinder_v by_o cambyses_n it_o will_v please_v god_n that_o the_o work_n may_v go_v forward_o and_o that_o the_o impediment_n may_v be_v remove_v and_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n prevent_v herein_o daniel_n be_v hear_v for_o the_o present_a in_o the_o one_o that_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o adversary_n may_v be_v stay_v which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o angel_n stay_v to_o bridle_v the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n the_o other_o be_v in_o due_a time_n effect_v afterward_o when_o the_o temple_n be_v re-edify_v under_o darius_n and_o afterward_o ezra_n and_o nehemiah_n be_v send_v to_o set_v the_o city_n in_o order_n and_o to_o finish_v the_o build_n of_o it_o and_o that_o this_o be_v daniel_n request_n may_v be_v gather_v by_o these_o two_o reason_n 1._o daniel_n be_v hear_v concern_v that_o matter_n for_o the_o which_o he_o be_v in_o grief_n so_o many_o day_n but_o that_o be_v show_v before_o to_o have_v be_v for_o the_o hinder_v of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n 2._o that_o which_o detain_v the_o angel_n 21._o day_n be_v to_o show_v the_o effect_n of_o daniel_n prayer_n but_o the_o business_n of_o persia_n stay_v the_o angel_n that_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n people_n shall_v not_o proceed_v in_o their_o malice_n therefore_o for_o that_o daniel_n pray_v 20._o quest._n who_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o persia._n 1._o some_o do_v think_v that_o this_o prince_n of_o persia_n be_v a_o evil_a angel_n and_o no_o other_o but_o satan_n this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la and_o some_o do_v father_n it_o also_o upon_o hierome_n as_o rupert_n lib._n 9_o the_o victor_n verb._n dei_fw-la thomas_n p._n 1._o qu._n 113._o carthusian_n and_o hieromes_n word_n seem_v to_o import_v so_o much_o for_o he_o think_v that_o this_o prince_n of_o persia_n be_v of_o those_o prince_n who_o s._n paul_n call_v prince_n of_o the_o world_n which_o crucify_v christ_n 1._o cor._n 2._o 8._o which_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o evil_a angel_n though_o indeed_o in_o that_o place_n s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o prince_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n which_o set_v themselves_o against_o christ._n but_o whether_o hierome_n be_v or_o not_o of_o that_o opinion_n cassianus_n evident_o say_v quem_fw-la principem_fw-la regni_fw-la persarum_fw-la minime_fw-la dubitandum_fw-la est_fw-la adversariam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la potestatem_fw-la quae_fw-la favebat_fw-la genti_fw-la
only_o can_v foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v v_o 1._o the_o time_n appoint_v be_v long_o hereby_o the_o god_n of_o daniel_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n because_o he_o can_v foreshewe_v thing_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v long_o after_o thing_n at_o hand_n which_o already_o be_v begin_v in_o their_o cause_n the_o subtle_a spirit_n can_v give_v notice_n of_o nay_o we_o see_v that_o diverse_a creature_n by_o their_o natural_a sense_n can_v prognosticate_v of_o the_o change_n of_o weather_n which_o be_v instant_a but_o thing_n a_o far_o off_o and_o to_o come_v none_o but_o god_n can_v foretell_v as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n isaiah_n 44._o 7._o what_o be_v at_o hand_n and_o what_o thing_n be_v to_o come_v let_v they_o show_v unto_o they_o the_o lord_n by_o this_o argument_n show_v himself_o only_o to_o be_v god_n and_o all_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o heathen_a to_o be_v but_o vain_a because_o they_o can_v declare_v no_o such_o thing_n aforehand_o 4._o doctr._n of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o fear_n v_o 7._o a_o great_a fear_n fall_v upon_o they_o so_o that_o they_o flee_v away_o etc._n etc._n here_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o fear_n of_o daniel_n and_o his_o companion_n they_o be_v so_o fright_v that_o they_o run_v away_o and_o hide_v themselves_o and_o so_o be_v deprive_v of_o this_o goodly_a vision_n but_o daniel_n though_o much_o amaze_v yet_o stay_v by_o it_o and_o to_o he_o be_v this_o vision_n reveal_v so_o there_o be_v some_o which_o through_o their_o infirmity_n and_o weakness_n do_v quite_o fall_v away_o other_o though_o they_o have_v their_o imperfection_n yet_o do_v recover_v themselves_o and_o return_v again_o jun._n of_o this_o sort_n be_v peter_n of_o the_o other_o judas_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 12._o 13._o make_v straight_a step_n unto_o your_o foot_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v halt_v be_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o way_n but_o let_v it_o rather_o be_v heal_v 5._o doct._n of_o the_o office_n of_o angel_n v_o 14._o now_o i_o be_o come_v to_o show_v thou_o etc._n etc._n here_o be_v three_o special_a thing_n express_v wherein_o the_o lord_n use_v the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n to_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o child_n 1._o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n upon_o their_o prayer_n to_o comfort_v they_o as_o god_n send_v his_o angel_n to_o peter_n be_v in_o prison_n act._n 12._o 2._o their_o office_n be_v to_o protect_v and_o defend_v the_o child_n of_o god_n as_o here_o the_o angel_n fight_v against_o the_o prince_n of_o persia_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o be_v the_o angel_n send_v to_o stop_v the_o lion_n mouth_n against_o daniel_n 3._o they_o be_v employ_v to_o instruct_v man_n and_o give_v they_o knowledge_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v they_o as_o here_o the_o angel_n reveal_v diverse_a thing_n to_o daniel_n that_o afterward_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v so_o the_o angel_n appear_v to_o cornelius_n advise_v he_o what_o course_n to_o take_v for_o his_o further_a instruction_n 6._o doct._n of_o the_o power_n of_o angel_n these_o angel_n be_v spirit_n of_o great_a power_n to_o who_o all_o earthly_a potentate_n must_v give_v place_n there_o be_v no_o creature_n that_o can_v withstand_v they_o be_v arm_v with_o power_n from_o god_n therefore_o they_o be_v call_v principality_n rom._n 8._o 38._o principality_n and_o power_n in_o heavenly_a place_n ephes._n 1._o 21._o one_o angel_n in_o david_n time_n destroy_v 70._o thousand_o when_o david_n have_v number_v the_o people_n 2._o sam._n 24._o 15._o one_o angel_n slay_v in_o senacheribs_n host_n in_o one_o night_n a_o 185._o thousand_o 2._o king_n 19_o and_o here_o one_o angel_n encounter_v with_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n yet_o the_o angel_n power_n be_v limit_v they_o can_v go_v no_o further_o than_o they_o be_v authorize_v of_o god_n 7._o doct._n of_o the_o presence_n of_o angel_n the_o angel_n though_o they_o be_v of_o great_a agility_n and_o can_v speedy_o pass_v from_o place_n to_o place_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o every_o where_o nor_o in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o this_o angel_n while_o he_o be_v stay_v about_o these_o affair_n in_o persia_n can_v not_o be_v present_a with_o daniel_n and_o while_o he_o be_v commune_v with_o daniel_n he_o be_v absent_a from_o persia_n as_o he_o say_v v_o 20._o know_v thou_o not_o wherefore_o i_o be_o come_v unto_o thou_o but_o now_o will_v i_o return_v to_o fight_v with_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n only_o it_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o god_n to_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n with_o his_o presence_n and_o to_o be_v every_o where_o in_o the_o same_o instant_n as_o he_o say_v by_o the_o prophet_n heaven_n be_v my_o seat_n earth_n be_v my_o footstool_n isay._n 66._o 1._o 8._o doctr._n the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o kingdom_n the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v the_o angel_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o vengeance_n as_o here_o the_o angel_n sight_v against_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n until_o by_o little_a and_o little_a their_o kingdom_n be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o by_o the_o prince_n of_o grecia_n the_o occasion_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o kingdom_n be_v the_o afflict_a and_o oppress_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o the_o babylonian_n for_o hold_v the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o captivity_n be_v surprise_v by_o the_o persian_n and_o they_o likewise_o for_o hinder_v the_o work_n of_o god_n house_n and_o suffer_v the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o be_v molest_v be_v subdue_v by_o the_o grecian_n and_o these_o also_o especial_o the_o seleucian_n for_o tyrannise_v over_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v root_v out_o by_o the_o roman_n 9_o doctr._n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o god_n decree_n v_o 21._o i_o will_v show_v thou_o what_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v in_o the_o prescience_n of_o god_n who_o need_v not_o any_o book_n to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n but_o this_o be_v take_v from_o the_o use_n of_o prince_n and_o judge_n which_o have_v their_o register_n and_o record_n wherein_o their_o decree_n and_o ordinance_n be_v set_v down_o this_o scripture_n of_o truth_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o god_n infallible_a and_o unchangeable_a decree_n which_o can_v alter_v but_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v decree_v so_o certain_o shall_v every_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v isay._n 14._o 24._o the_o lord_n of_o host_n have_v swear_v say_v sure_o like_a as_o i_o have_v purpose_v so_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o as_o i_o have_v consult_v it_o shall_v stand_v 5._o place_n of_o controversy_n 1._o controv._n against_o superstitious_a fast_n v_o 3._o i_o eat_v no_o pleasant_a bread_n etc._n etc._n daniel_n be_v purpose_v to_o humble_v himself_o by_o fast_v do_v not_o only_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n but_o from_o wine_n also_o yea_o from_o fine_a bread_n and_o from_o other_o delicate_n as_o in_o anoint_v himself_o with_o oil_n whereby_o their_o nice_a superstition_n or_o superstitious_a niceness_n be_v reprove_v who_o though_o they_o forbear_v the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n in_o their_o fasting_n yet_o will_v fill_v their_o belly_n with_o other_o delicate_a meat_n with_o dainty_a fish_n and_o curious_a confection_n but_o here_o daniel_n content_v himself_o with_o course_n bread_n and_o water_n calvin_n neither_o do_v he_o thus_o fast_o as_o thereby_o think_v to_o merit_v any_o thing_n at_o god_n hand_n but_o only_o that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o humble_v thereby_o and_o to_o make_v his_o prayer_n more_o fervent_a and_o effectual_a osiand_n see_v more_o of_o the_o abuse_n of_o fast_v elsewhere_o 97._o 2._o controv._n that_o paradise_n be_v a_o terrestrial_a place_n v_o 4._o i_o be_v by_o the_o side_n of_o the_o great_a river_n hiddekel_n whereas_o some_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o history_n of_o paradise_n with_o the_o tree_n and_o river_n be_v spiritual_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o in_o a_o allegory_n as_o plilo_n lib._n 1._o allegor_fw-la valentinus_n apud_fw-la ireneum_fw-la lib._n 1._o advers._n hare_n c._n 1._o origen_n mentar_n in_o genes_n and_o of_o late_a day_n franciscus_n georgius_n tom_n 1._o problemat_n s._n hierome_n out_o of_o this_o place_n confute_v they_o where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o one_o of_o the_o river_n which_o flow_v out_o of_o paradise_n namely_o hiddekel_n or_o tigris_n hieromes_n word_n be_v these_o vnde_fw-la eorum_fw-la deliramenta_fw-la conticescant_fw-la qui_fw-la umbras_fw-la &_o imagine_v in_o veritate_fw-la quaerentes_fw-la ipsam_fw-la conantur_fw-la evertere_fw-la veritatatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n whence_o their_o mad_a conceit_n be_v put_v to_o silence_n who_o seek_v shadow_n &_o show_v in_o the_o truth_n go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n in_o make_v a_o allegory_n of_o paradise_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o river_n thereof_o 3._o controv._n against_o the_o
sometime_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n but_o in_o the_o last_o social_a war_n against_o antigonus_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o judea_n shall_v belong_v unto_o the_o seleucian_n as_o antiochus_n the_o great_a allege_v in_o a_o embassage_n send_v unto_o ptolemy_n philopator_n king_n of_o egypt_n polyb._n lib._n 5._o therefore_o mention_n be_v make_v only_o of_o these_o two_o king_n because_o they_o only_o have_v to_o do_v with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o as_o hierome_n say_v scripturae_fw-la propositum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la externam_fw-la absque_fw-la judais_n historiam_fw-la texere_fw-la it_o be_v the_o intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o to_o follow_v a_o foreign_a history_n without_o respect_n unto_o the_o jew_n and_o josephus_n hereof_o thus_o write_v antiocho_n magno_fw-la in_o asia_n regnante_fw-la etc._n etc._n while_o antiochus_n the_o great_a reign_v in_o asia_n judea_n be_v continual_o trouble_v and_o coelesyria_n for_o while_o he_o have_v war_n with_o ptolomeus_n philopator_n and_o his_o son_n epiphanes_n whether_o he_o do_v overcome_v or_o be_v overcome_v they_o go_v to_o wrack_n even_o like_a unto_o a_o ship_n drive_v to_o and_o fro_o of_o the_o wind_n inter_fw-la prosperam_fw-la &_o aduersam_fw-la antiochi_n fortunam_fw-la iactat_fw-la a_o est_fw-la judea_n be_v toss_v up_o and_o down_o between_o the_o prosperous_a and_o adverse_a fortune_n of_o antiochus_n joseph_n lib._n 12._o antiquit_n c._n 3._o 16._o quest._n of_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n and_o syria_n of_o who_o daniel_n propehsy_v in_o this_o chapter_n the_o king_n of_o egypt_n which_o succeed_v one_o another_o after_o the_o division_n of_o alexander_n kingdom_n into_o four_o part_n be_v these_o 1._o ptolomeus_n the_o son_n of_o lagus_n call_v ptolomeus_n soter_n which_o signify_v a_o saviour_n because_o he_o rescue_v diverse_a king_n that_o flee_v unto_o he_o for_o succour_n as_o seleucus_n and_o pyrrhus_n king_n of_o epyrus_n but_o he_o contrary_a to_o his_o name_n make_v havoc_n of_o syria_n and_o judea_n 2._o ptolomeus_n philadelphus_n so_o call_v either_o because_o he_o marry_v his_o own_o sister_n or_o by_o the_o contrary_a because_o he_o kill_v two_o of_o his_o brother_n jun._n in_o commentar_n 3._o ptolemy_n euergetes_n a_o benefactor_n he_o be_v a_o great_a favourer_n and_o patron_n of_o learning_n as_o his_o father_n be_v the_o egyptian_n call_v he_o a_o benefactor_n because_o he_o bring_v home_o the_o image_n from_o babylon_n which_o cambyses_n have_v carry_v away_o 4._o ptolomeus_n philopator_n so_o call_v by_o the_o contrary_a for_o he_o kill_v his_o father_n mother_n and_o brother_n 5._o ptolomeus_n surname_v epiphanes_n that_o be_v the_o famous_a or_o renown_a 6._o ptolomeus_n philometor_n which_o signify_v a_o lover_n of_o his_o mother_n or_o belove_v of_o his_o mother_n by_o the_o contrary_a for_o his_o mother_n hate_v he_o 7._o ptolomeus_n physcon_n so_o call_v of_o his_o great_a belly_n 8._o ptolemy_n lathurus_n so_o name_v because_o be_v exile_v by_o his_o mother_n he_o secret_o practise_v to_o return_v again_o 9_o ptolemy_n auletes_n so_o surname_v the_o piper_n because_o he_o will_v public_o in_o his_o princely_a habit_n contend_v with_o fiddler_n and_o piper_n to_o exceed_v they_o in_o fiddle_v and_o pipe_v 10._o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o his_o son_n ptolemy_n dyonisius_n and_o cleopatra_n this_o dyonisius_n cause_v pompey_n to_o be_v kill_v that_o flee_v thither_o for_o succour_n be_v overcome_v of_o cesar_n who_o because_o he_o afterward_o practise_v against_o julius_n cesar_n be_v by_o he_o command_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o the_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o cleopatra_n his_o sister_n who_o afterward_o marry_v to_o antonius_n ex_fw-la melancth_v bull_v and_o these_o be_v the_o egyptian_a king_n until_o the_o roman_n reduce_v it_o into_o a_o province_n after_o the_o death_n of_o antonius_n and_o cleopatra_n these_o also_o be_v the_o king_n of_o syria_n call_v the_o king_n of_o the_o north._n 1._o the_o founder_n and_o beginner_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v seleucus_n surname_v nicanor_n 2._o next_o unto_o he_o be_v antiochus_n surname_v soter_n a_o saviour_n 3._o then_o antiochus_n call_v theos_n which_o signify_v god_n because_o he_o require_v divine_a ho●●●●_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o bull_v or_o as_o pausanias_n he_o be_v salute_v by_o that_o title_n of_o the_o mile●ians_n for_o expel_v their_o tyrant_n 4._o seleucus_n callinicus_n which_o signify_v a_o excellent_a warriet_fw-la the_o son_n of_o antiochus_n theos_n by_o laodice_n his_o brother_n antiochus_n hierax_n so_o term_v for_o his_o rapacitie_n reign_v together_o with_o he_o in_o a_o other_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n 5._o seleucus_n ceraunus_n that_o be_v a_o flash_a or_o lightning_n be_v the_o next_o but_o he_o reign_v not_o long_o therefore_o by_o some_o he_o be_v omit_v as_o hugo_n card._n melancth_v 6._o antiochus_n surname_v megas_n the_o great_a succeed_v his_o brother_n ceraunus_n 7._o then_o seleucus_n philopator_n so_o call_v because_o his_o father_n love_v he_o reign_v but_o not_o long_o 8._o antiochus_n epiphanes_n the_o famous_a by_o the_o contrary_a for_o he_o be_v of_o a_o base_a nature_n and_o despise_v v_o 2._o or_o rather_o as_o some_o call_v he_o epimanes_n the_o mad_a or_o furious_a antiochus_n succeed_v philopator_n thus_o far_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n be_v extend_v to_o the_o 8._o king_n of_o syria_n which_o be_v epiphanes_n and_o to_o the_o 6._o of_o egypt_n ptolemy_n philometor_n at_o these_o the_o pprophecy_n stay_v because_o the_o principal_a intendment_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n be_v to_o foreshow_v the_o trouble_n which_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v endure_v under_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o this_o pprophecy_n there_o end_v signify_v that_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v not_o far_o off_o and_o beside_o after_o this_o time_n when_o such_o havoc_n be_v make_v of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n by_o antiochus_n the_o king_n of_o syria_n as_o a_o just_a recompense_n for_o their_o cruelty_n against_o god_n people_n do_v one_o cut_v a_o other_o throat_n and_o so_o the_o kingdom_n by_o civil_a dissension_n be_v rend_v a_o sunder_o until_o it_o come_v unto_o the_o roman_n these_o than_o be_v the_o king_n that_o succeed_v epiphanes_n 9_o antiochus_n eupator_n epiphanes_n son_n who_o demetrius_n his_o uncle_n son_n kill_v 10._o demetrius_n succeed_v who_o one_o alexander_n feign_v to_o be_v epiphanes_n son_n kill_v and_o usurp_v the_o kingdom_n by_o ptolemy_n philometor_n mean_n 11._o demetrius_z nicanor_z son_n of_o the_o other_o demetrius_n killeth_z alexander_z 12._o antiochus_n sedetes_n expel_v demetrius_n his_o brother_n 13._o tryphon_n kill_v sedetes_n and_o be_v king_n 14._o antiochus_n the_o brother_n of_o demetrius_n call_v eusebes_n for_o his_o piety_n because_o have_v besiege_v jerusalem_n in_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n for_o reverence_n of_o their_o feast_n he_o do_v forbear_v they_o and_o send_v they_o sacrifice_n to_o offer_v he_o kill_v tryphon_n and_o he_o himself_o be_v slay_v in_o a_o battle_n by_o arsaces_n king_n of_o the_o parthian_n 15._o demetrius_n nicanor_n be_v restore_v again_o to_o his_o kingdom_n 16._o one_o alexander_n usurp_v the_o kingdom_n who_o be_v overcome_v by_o antiochus_n gryphus_n 17._o antiochus_n call_v gryphus_n of_o his_o eagle_n or_o hook_a nose_n be_v the_o son_n of_o demetrius_n between_o he_o and_o antiochus_n cyzicenus_n so_o name_v of_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v bring_v up_o the_o son_n of_o sedetes_n be_v great_a war_n 18._o seleucus_n the_o son_n of_o gryphus_n prosecute_v his_o father_n quarrel_n he_o kill_v cyzicenus_n thus_o the_o family_n of_o the_o seleucian_n by_o mutual_a discord_n be_v at_o the_o length_n extinguish_v and_o then_o tygranes_n king_n of_o armenia_n take_v advantage_n of_o this_o civil_a dissension_n usurp_v the_o kingdom_n and_o hold_v it_o certain_a year_n until_o he_o be_v subdue_v by_o pompey_n melancth_v bull_v 17._o quest._n of_o the_o first_o ptolemy_n call_v here_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n 1._o this_o ptolemy_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o lagus_n but_o in_o truth_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o philippus_n king_n of_o macedon_n who_o marry_v his_o mother_n be_v great_a with_o child_n unto_o lagus_n 2._o alexander_n for_o his_o singular_a valour_n exalt_v he_o justin._n for_o when_o alexander_n be_v in_o danger_n at_o oxydrace_n he_o only_o of_o all_o his_o friend_n rescue_v he_o 3._o he_o be_v the_o chief_a author_n of_o divide_v the_o empire_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o government_n of_o egypt_n slay_v cleomenes_n the_o governor_n thereof_o and_o he_o overcome_v perdiccas_n that_o come_v against_o he_o with_o a_o army_n 4._o after_o the_o death_n of_o perdiccas_n he_o recover_v phoenicia_n syria_n and_o cyprus_n to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o by_o his_o son_n megas_n obtain_v cyrene_n pausan._n in_o attic._n 5._o he_o restore_v pyrrhus_n king_n of_o epyrus_n to_o
yet_o herein_o agree_v with_o the_o truth_n apply_v this_o whole_a pprophecy_n unto_o antiochus_n but_o he_o be_v deceive_v in_o name_v the_o place_n of_o his_o death_n to_o be_v tabis_n a_o town_n of_o persia_n whereas_o he_o be_v carry_v to_o babylon_n and_o there_o sicken_v 1._o macchab._n 6._o 4._o and_o be_v strike_v of_o god_n with_o a_o incurable_a disease_n that_o no_o man_n can_v help_v he_o for_o he_o crawl_v full_a of_o worm_n and_o his_o flesh_n fall_v off_o from_o he_o so_o that_o no_o man_n can_v endure_v his_o stink_n yea_o he_o be_v loathsome_a to_o himself_o as_o be_v further_o declare_v 2._o macchab._n 9_o 10._o 12._o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o wicked_a antiochus_n but_o against_o this_o exposition_n it_o be_v thus_o object_v 1._o that_o antiochm_n die_v not_o between_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o mountain_n as_o be_v here_o describe_v but_o as_o he_o come_v out_o of_o persia_n lyranus_fw-la 2._o see_v these_o latter_a word_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v join_v with_o necessary_a coherence_n to_o the_o former_a as_o they_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o antiochus_n no_o more_o be_v these_o perer._n answ._n 1._o it_o be_v not_o say_v here_o that_o he_o die_v upon_o the_o mountain_n or_o between_o the_o sea_n but_o there_o be_v his_o princely_a pavilion_n spread_v for_o while_o antiochus_n go_v into_o persia_n he_o leave_v half_o of_o his_o army_n and_o his_o son_n antiochus_n with_o lysias_n who_o pitch_v in_o emmaus_n at_o the_o entrance_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o hill_n as_o be_v show_v 1._o macchab._n 3._o 34._o 40._o now_o while_o lysias_n with_o other_o captain_n be_v busy_a in_o suppress_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v discomfit_v as_o be_v further_o declare_v 1._o macchab._n 5._o the_o news_n thereof_o be_v bring_v to_o antiochus_n be_v in_o persia_n whereupon_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o great_a rage_n purpose_v utter_o to_o destroy_v jerusalem_n but_o the_o lord_n plague_v he_o and_o he_o die_v in_o the_o way_n 1._o macchab._n 6._o 2._o macchab._n 9_o and_o thus_o be_v the_o horn_n break_v without_o hand_n as_o be_v prophesy_v c._n 8._o 25._o 2._o this_o argument_n may_v be_v return_v upon_o pererius_n for_o see_v these_o word_n hang_v together_o with_o the_o former_a and_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o show_v before_o that_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n be_v understand_v of_o antiochus_n so_o must_v the_o latter_a also_o 3._o this_o ●ore_a plague_n fall_v upon_o antiochus_n which_o appianus_n think_v to_o have_v be_v a_o venereous_a or_o lecherous_a disease_n in_o syriac_n but_o it_o be_v more_o strange_a and_o extraordinary_a though_o that_o be_v foul_a and_o filthy_a enough_o he_o be_v thus_o smite_v not_o as_o polybius_n think_v because_o he_o will_v have_v spoil_v the_o temple_n of_o diana_n for_o as_o josephus_n say_v tantum_fw-la cogitavit_fw-la he_o only_o intend_v it_o he_o do_v it_o not_o and_o therefore_o he_o well_o conclude_v against_o polybius_n that_o antiochus_n perish_v ob_fw-la templi_fw-la hierosolymitani_fw-la excidium_fw-la for_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n lib._n 12._o antiquit._fw-la c._n 12._o and_o thus_o far_o of_o the_o question_n and_o doubt_n move_v out_o of_o this_o chapter_n 4._o place_n of_o doctrine_n 1._o doct._n the_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o truth_n v_o 2._o now_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o truth_n the_o truth_n be_v only_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v first_o manifest_v unto_o the_o world_n in_o christ_n as_o he_o say_v joh._n 14._o 6._o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n and_o this_o truth_n be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n say_v joh._n 17._o 17._o thy_o word_n be_v the_o truth_n the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v call_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o not_o because_o it_o bear_v up_o the_o truth_n but_o it_o rather_o be_v bear_v up_o by_o the_o truth_n but_o both_o because_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v only_o reveal_v to_o the_o church_n as_o here_o the_o angel_n deliver_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n unto_o daniel_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v set_v forth_o and_o profess_v in_o the_o world_n by_o the_o church_n as_o a_o light_n set_v upon_o a_o pillar_n or_o a_o beacon_n raise_v upon_o a_o mountain_n doctr._n 2._o of_o the_o impotency_n of_o image_n v_o 8._o he_o shall_v carry_v away_o captive_a their_o god_n with_o their_o melt_a image_n quales_fw-la dij_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la captivi_fw-la ducuntur_fw-la what_o manner_n of_o god_n be_v these_o which_o be_v carry_v into_o captivity_n bull_v so_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n deride_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o chaldean_n bel_n and_o nebo_n which_o be_v carry_v upon_o beast_n into_o captivity_n isay._n 46._o 1._o how_o shall_v they_o be_v able_a to_o help_v other_o that_o can_v do_v nothing_o for_o themselves_o doct._n 3._o victory_n not_o always_o a_o sign_n of_o a_o good_a cause_n v_o 11._o and_o the_o multitude_n shall_v be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n ptolemy_n philopator_n a_o most_o vicious_a king_n who_o slay_v eurydice_n his_o both_o sister_n and_o wife_n and_o use_v both_o a_o male_a concubine_n agathocles_n and_o his_o sister_n agathoclea_n yet_o he_o overcom_v antiochus_n magnus_n not_o so_o bad_a as_o himself_o which_o show_v that_o the_o victory_n always_o fall_v not_o on_o the_o better_a side_n as_o the_o israelite_n fight_v against_o benjamin_n have_v the_o better_a cause_n be_v twice_o overcome_v bull_v doct._n 4._o the_o church_n of_o god_n make_v a_o land_n glorious_a v_o 16._o he_o shall_v stand_v in_o the_o pleasant_a glorious_a or_o beautiful_a land_n which_o be_v judea_n not_o so_o much_o glorious_a because_o of_o the_o fertility_n thereof_o pintus_fw-la or_o for_o the_o miracle_n do_v therein_o lyran_n for_o many_o great_a work_n have_v be_v do_v in_o egypt_n but_o because_o there_o be_v the_o temple_n and_o public_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n this_o show_v that_o religion_n make_v land_n famous_a and_o glorious_a polan_n doct._n 5._o of_o the_o fidelity_n of_o wife_n to_o their_o husband_n v_o 17._o she_o shall_v not_o stand_v on_o his_o side_n antiochus_n the_o great_a give_v his_o daughter_n cleopatra_n unto_o ptolemy_n epiphanes_n think_v to_o use_v she_o as_o a_o instrument_n to_o destroy_v he_o but_o she_o contrary_a to_o the_o expectation_n of_o her_o father_n cleave_v to_o her_o husband_n wherein_o she_o show_v the_o part_n of_o a_o dutiful_a obedient_a wife_n prefer_v the_o life_n and_o safety_n of_o her_o husband_n before_o her_o father_n ungodly_a desire_n thus_o the_o scripture_n say_v for_o this_o cause_n shall_v a_o man_n forsake_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n genes_n 2._o if_o in_o the_o degree_n of_o lawful_a affection_n the_o wife_n or_o husband_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o parent_n much_o more_o in_o unlawful_a desire_n polan_n 6._o doctr._n that_o tribute_n must_v be_v pay_v to_o the_o prince_n v_o 20._o then_o shall_v stand_v up_o in_o his_o place_n one_o that_o shall_v raise_v tax_n this_o be_v seleucus_n callinicus_n who_o raise_v immoderate_a tax_n tribute_n be_v to_o be_v pay_v unto_o prince_n and_o they_o may_v lawful_o take_v it_o for_o what_o god_n give_v they_o may_v take_v but_o such_o thing_n be_v give_v unto_o prince_n as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n say_v give_v unto_o cesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o such_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v yield_v unto_o the_o magistrate_n because_o they_o be_v help_n to_o suppress_v the_o evil_a that_o disturb_v the_o peace_n and_o in_o that_o behalf_n they_o be_v due_a as_o the_o apostle_n show_v rom._n 13._o 4._o 7._o but_o two_o caution_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o such_o tax_n be_v moderate_a not_o excessive_a tend_v to_o the_o overthrow_n and_o undo_n of_o the_o subject_n as_o seleucus_n here_o be_v such_o a_o raker_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n of_o late_a day_n who_o exact_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v sell_v in_o the_o low_a country_n 2._o such_o tax_n and_o levy_n of_o money_n must_v not_o be_v waste_v in_o riot_n and_o excess_n but_o ●mploied_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o commonwealth_n 7._o doct._n religion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compel_v or_o urge_v by_o torment_n v_o 33._o they_o shall_v fall_v by_o flame_n by_o sword_n antiochus_n do_v wicked_o force_v the_o faithful_a by_o such_o torment_n to_o forsake_v their_o religion_n so_o do_v that_o antichrist_n of_o rome_n that_o by_o fire_n and_o sword_n force_v man_n unto_o his_o superstition_n lactantius_n say_v well_o religio_fw-la cogi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la verbis_fw-la potius_fw-la quam_fw-la verberibus_fw-la res_fw-la agenda_fw-la est_fw-la religion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v force_v
the_o son_n of_o the_o say_v friderike_n by_o the_o procurement_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o 3._o who_o establish_a transubstantiation_n be_v slay_v at_o bamberge_n by_o otto_n count_n palatine_n otto_n the_o 4._o and_o friderike_n the_o 2._o be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o 3._o and_o gregor_n 9_o henry_n the_o 7._o be_v poison_v with_o a_o consecrate_v host_n by_o a_o monk_n of_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o guelph_n which_o be_v on_o the_o pope_n side_n the_o gibelline_n be_v a_o other_o faction_n which_o hold_v with_o emperor_n lodovike_v the_o 4._o be_v likewise_o excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n who_o send_v forth_o his_o monk_n and_o friar_n into_o every_o quarter_n to_o defame_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o cardinal_n do_v stir_v up_o the_o prince_n to_o war_n against_o he_o avent_n and_o thus_o have_v the_o pope_n handle_v the_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n oppose_v themselves_o to_o their_o superstition_n have_v find_v no_o better_a measure_n 2._o childericus_fw-la king_n of_o france_n be_v depose_v and_o thrust_v into_o a_o monastery_n pope_n rachis_n king_n of_o the_o lombard_n be_v by_o the_o same_o pope_n zacharie_n put_v into_o a_o monastery_n lodovike_v the_o 12._o be_v much_o encumber_a by_o julius_n the_o second_o who_o himself_o lead_v his_o army_n from_o rome_n as_o he_o go_v over_o the_o bridge_n of_o the_o river_n tiber_n throw_v s._n peter_n key_n into_o the_o river_n and_o see_v they_o will_v do_v he_o no_o good_a he_o say_v he_o will_v betake_v himself_o to_o paul_n sword_n henry_n the_o 4._o now_o king_n of_o france_n be_v assault_v by_o 6._o pope_n gregor_n the_o 13._o sixtus_n the_o 5._o vrbane_n the_o 7._o gregor_n the_o 14._o innocentius_n the_o 9_o clement_n the_o 8._o who_o the_o last_o name_v have_v bring_v the_o king_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v thereupon_o triumph_v insolent_o over_o he_o as_o in_o a_o certain_a book_n set_v forth_o of_o that_o matter_n there_o be_v a_o tractate_n de_fw-fr victoria_fw-la clementis_fw-la 8._o de_fw-la henric●_n 4._o etc._n etc._n gloriose_fw-la triumphantis_fw-la of_o the_o victory_n of_o clement_n the_o 8._o most_o glorious_o triumph_v over_o henry_n the_o 4._o king_n of_o france_n and_o navarre_n thus_o have_v the_o famous_a king_n also_o of_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n be_v serve_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o minister_n king_n john_n be_v poison_v by_o a_o monk_n king_n henry_n the_o 8._o that_o most_o famous_a and_o renown_a king_n be_v by_o the_o bull_n of_o paulus_n the_o 3._o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o his_o subject_n free_v from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n queen_n elizabeth_n our_o late_a gracious_a sovereign_n of_o bless_a memory_n before_o she_o come_v to_o her_o crown_n be_v persecute_v by_o her_o sister_n queen_n marie_n and_o her_o chief_a agent_n stephen_n gardener_n for_o her_o religion_n and_o after_o that_o by_o god_n fatherly_a providence_n and_o care_n to_o his_o church_n she_o be_v advance_v to_o the_o kingdom_n she_o be_v practise_v against_o by_o nine_o pope_n the_o six_o before_o name_v and_o by_o paulus_n the_o 4._o pius_fw-la the_o 4._o pius_fw-la the_o 5._o both_o by_o open_a war_n and_o hostility_n wherein_o the_o two_o philip_n of_o spain_n bear_v the_o chief_a stroke_n and_o by_o privy_a treachery_n and_o treason_n our_o king_n majesty_n that_o be_v now_o both_o in_o scotland_n have_v experience_n of_o popish_a practice_n against_o he_o and_o since_o his_o happy_a come_n into_o england_n some_o of_o the_o popish_a faction_n have_v more_o than_o once_o or_o twice_o conspire_v against_o he_o but_o bless_v be_v god_n he_o have_v escape_v their_o snare_n 3._o now_o in_o the_o three_o place_n pope_n some_o prince_n and_o noble_n shall_v be_v produce_v who_o the_o pope_n have_v cruel_o assault_v the_o exarch_n or_o viceroy_n of_o ravenna_n under_o leo_n the_o 3._o emperor_n by_o the_o pope_n faction_n be_v slay_v with_o his_o son_n the_o medici_n at_o florence_n be_v set_v upon_o in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o sixtus_n the_o 4._o the_o pope_n legate_n give_v the_o sign_n when_o the_o host_n be_v lift_v up_o volaterran_n lib._n 5._o geograph_n the_o earl_n of_o tholouse_n be_v pursue_v by_o the_o french_a king_n by_o most_o fierce_a war_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o pope_n only_o because_o he_o favour_v the_o albigense_n john_n friderike_n duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o philip_n the_o landgrave_n of_o hassia_n be_v assault_v by_o most_o cruel_a war_n only_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n count_n egmond_n and_o count_n horn_n be_v behead_v for_o favour_v the_o protestant_n the_o prince_n of_o condie_n be_v poison_v caspar_n colignius_n slay_v in_o the_o massacre_n in_o france_n antelot_n and_o cardinal_n castilion_n poison_v william_n prince_n of_o aurane_n be_v slay_v by_o a_o villain_n charles_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n son_n because_o he_o be_v think_v to_o favour_v the_o protestant_n who_o they_o call_v heretic_n be_v make_v a_o end_n of_o by_o the_o inquisitor_n for_o religion_n neither_o can_v his_o father_n or_o will_v not_o deliver_v he_o 4._o these_o learned_a confessor_n also_o ●ope_n and_o some_o holy_a martyr_n have_v in_o diverse_a age_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v evil_o entreat_v for_o it_o vigilantius_n bishop_n of_o barcelona_n in_o spain_n because_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o adoration_n of_o relic_n and_o with_o single_a life_n be_v count_v a_o heretic_n the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n which_o hold_v a_o synod_n at_o eliberine_n in_o spain_n be_v adjudge_v heretic_n by_o pope_n adrian_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o frankefort_n ann._n 840._o bertram_z write_v against_o transubstantiation_n so_o do_v joannes_n scotus_n ann._n 869._o and_o be_v slay_v of_o his_o scholar_n with_o their_o write_a pen_n ann._n 964._o huldericus_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n impugn_a the_o single_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n ann._n 1039._o berengarius_fw-la bent_n himself_o against_o transubstantiation_n ann._n 1157._o joannes_n sarisburiens_fw-la do_v teach_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n babylon_n arnoldus_fw-la bishop_n of_o brixia_n deny_v unto_o the_o pope_n the_o use_n of_o the_o temporal_a sword_n about_o the_o same_o time_n live_v peter_n bloix_n who_o public_o maintain_v in_o his_o write_n that_o rome_n be_v babylon_n the_o pope_n officer_n harpy_n his_o priest_n baalite_n ann._n 1160._o petrus_n waldo_n of_o lion_n ann_n 1240._o petrus_n de_fw-fr vineis_fw-la ann_n 1260._o gulielmus_fw-la de_fw-la s._n amore_n ann_n 1306._o petrus_n cassiodorus_n a_o learned_a noble_a man_n of_o italy_n 1314._o dulcimus_fw-la of_o navarre_n 1315._o arnoldus_fw-la de_fw-la nova_fw-la villa_n 1383._o john_n wicleffe_n in_o england_n 1405._o john_n hus_n and_o nicolaus_n clemangis_n a_o doctor_n of_o paris_n hyeronym_n savonarola_n a_o monk_n of_o ferrara_n who_o alexander_n the_o 6._o cause_v to_o be_v burn_v antonius_n mancinellus_n gulielmus_fw-la occam_fw-la all_o these_o be_v great_a impugner_n of_o the_o pope_n ann._n 1517._o martin_n luther_n ann_n 1519._o huldericus_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o since_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o germany_n oecolampadius_n capito_n melancthon_n martyr_n bullinger_n with_o other_o in_o france_n calvin_n beza_n farellus_n viretus_fw-la with_o other_o in_o england_n b._n cranmer_n b._n ridley_n b._n hooper_n m._n latimer_n m._n filpot_n m._n bradford_n holy_a martyr_n and_o since_o b._n jewel_n d._n fulke_n d._n whitaker_n d._n reynolds_n with_o many_o more_o excellent_a writer_n and_o worthy_a preacher_n have_v discover_v the_o nakedness_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n 5._o last_o whole_a church_n have_v be_v persecute_v for_o resist_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o doctrine_n pope_n the_o albigense_n under_o innocentius_n the_o 3._o the_o waldense_n under_o pope_n john_n the_o 22._o the_o church_n of_o calabria_n of_o sevill_n in_o spain_n of_o england_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n and_o the_o curche_n of_o france_n under_o charles_n the_o 9_o and_o henry_n the_o 3._o endure_v much_o oppression_n by_o the_o tyrrannie_n of_o the_o popish_a faction_n and_o thus_o do_v the_o pope_n resemble_v antiochus_n in_o persecute_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n profess_v the_o truth_n 15._o controv._n of_o the_o pride_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o antichrist_n against_o god_n 10._o v._n 36._o he_o shall_v magnify_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v god_n this_o be_v most_o true_a of_o the_o antichrist_n of_o rome_n for_o he_o exalt_v himself_o above_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v call_v god_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o excellency_n of_o nature_n and_o condition_n god_n make_v himself_o judge_n of_o the_o angel_n prince_n and_o magistrate_n also_o be_v call_v god_n they_o have_v the_o pope_n cause_v to_o kiss_v his_o foot_n and_o have_v trod_v upon_o their_o neck_n dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n at_o his_o pleasure_n innocentius_n the_o three_o
antichrist_n shall_v in_o deed_n sit_v in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n so_o repute_v and_o he_o shall_v style_v and_o title_n himself_o by_o the_o church_n as_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n in_o earth_n melancth_v pap_n fulke_n annotat_fw-la 2._o thess._n 2._o v._n 4._o he_o sit_v also_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o man_n conscience_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o to_o make_v law_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n bull_v 4._o some_o that_o hold_v the_o turk_n to_o be_v antichrist_n may_v by_o the_o temple_n understand_v those_o place_n where_o sometime_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o temple_n that_o shall_v then_o be_v so_o repute_v and_o take_v at_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n sit_v therein_o 17._o controv._n of_o the_o prosperity_n and_o outward_a success_n of_o antichrist_n as_o it_o be_v here_o say_v of_o antiochus_n time_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v what_o he_o list_v and_o again_o that_o he_o shall_v prosper_v so_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n have_v both_o so_o teach_v that_o he_o be_v to_o do_v what_o he_o list_v and_o he_o have_v practise_v and_o prosper_v according_o for_o the_o first_o nicolaus_n the_o pope_n thus_o write_v to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n à_fw-la seculari_fw-la potestate_fw-la nec_fw-la ligari_fw-la posse_fw-la nec_fw-la solvi_fw-la pontificum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o the_o chief_a bishop_n can_v neither_o be_v loose_v nor_o bind_v of_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o then_o he_o infer_v how_o that_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n call_v the_o pope_n god_n and_o so_o conclude_v nec_fw-la posse_fw-la deum_fw-la ab_fw-la homme_fw-fr iudicari_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o man_n etc._n etc._n and_o these_o be_v their_o position_n in_o their_o canon_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v without_o law_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o and_o if_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v determine_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o pope_n yet_o the_o sentence_n rather_o of_o the_o pope_n must_v stand_v and_o see_v he_o have_v all_o fullness_n of_o power_n no_o man_n be_v to_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v you_o so_o for_o his_o will_n stand_v for_o reason_n distinct_a 19_o 17._o quaest_n 4._o nemini_fw-la and_o as_o this_o be_v their_o doctrine_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v do_v what_o he_o list_v and_o no_o man_n be_v to_o check_v or_o control_v he_o so_o he_o have_v mighty_o prosper_v in_o his_o wicked_a proceed_n as_o antiochus_n do_v for_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n have_v further_v his_o enterprise_n learned_a man_n have_v and_o do_v descend_v his_o error_n all_o kingdom_n almost_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n university_n scholar_n have_v applaud_v he_o so_o many_o monastery_n in_o diverse_a country_n with_o their_o monk_n and_o friar_n depend_v of_o he_o this_o be_v the_o prosperity_n and_o external_a happy_a success_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v boast_v of_o and_o bellarmine_n among_o the_o rest_n make_v it_o a_o special_a note_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o but_o as_o antiochus_n prosperous_a success_n against_o christ_n church_n be_v no_o sign_n of_o god_n favour_n towards_o he_o no_o more_o be_v it_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n but_o i_o will_v here_o stay_v a_o while_n a_o little_a further_o yet_o to_o sift_v and_o examine_v this_o point_n 18._o controv._n that_o external_a happiness_n be_v not_o a_o sure_a note_n of_o the_o church_n bellarmine_n make_v external_a felicity_n a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 18._o give_v these_o instance_n of_o the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o romanist_n in_o their_o battle_n 1._o in_o the_o time_n of_o innocentius_n the_o 3._o the_o catholic_n in_o france_n with_o a_o army_n of_o 8000._o conquer_v a_o 100_o thousand_o of_o the_o albigense_n aemil._n lib._n 6._o hist._n francor_n 2._o anno_fw-la 1531._o the_o helvetian_a papist_n have_v five_o conflict_n with_o the_o helvetian_a protestant_n and_o still_o have_v the_o better_a 3._o charles_n the_o 5._o ann_n 1547._o obtain_v a_o miraculous_a victory_n against_o the_o protestant_a prince_n in_o germany_n 4._o in_o france_n and_o the_o low_a country_n the_o papist_n have_v have_v many_o victory_n not_o without_o miracle_n and_o the_o protestant_n seldom_o have_v the_o better_a 1._o ans._n these_o instance_n produce_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v false_a as_o shall_v now_o appear_v in_o the_o particular_a examination_n of_o they_o 1._o mathias_n parisiens_n report_v far_o otherwise_o of_o that_o battle_n writing_n that_o lewes_n the_o french_a king_n die_v in_o the_o siege_n of_o avenion_n and_o that_o his_o son_n have_v the_o lead_n of_o a_o great_a army_n against_o the_o albigense_n be_v overcome_v ab_fw-la exiguis_fw-la copijs_fw-la of_o a_o few_o small_a band_n and_o this_o be_v like_a to_o be_v the_o true_a report_n for_o it_o seem_v not_o probable_a that_o the_o persecute_a church_n of_o the_o albigense_n can_v set_v forth_o such_o a_o huge_a army_n 2._o the_o popish_a helvetian_o have_v not_o so_o many_o battle_n with_o the_o protestant_n there_o be_v but_o one_o battle_n and_o a_o skirmish_n the_o popish_a sort_n have_v the_o better_a have_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o high_a ground_n neither_o be_v it_o such_o a_o great_a victory_n for_o they_o be_v glad_a to_o ask_v peace_n and_o to_o compound_v the_o matter_n upon_o equal_a condition_n 3._o it_o be_v no_o miracle_n for_o charles_n the_o 5._o to_o prevail_v in_o that_o battle_n set_v upon_o duke_n frederick_n on_o a_o sudden_a and_o some_o of_o his_o confederate_n have_v forsake_v he_o neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n long_o enjoy_v that_o victory_n for_o he_o be_v not_o long_o after_o by_o mauritius_n who_o aid_v he_o against_o duke_n fredrick_n chase_v out_o of_o germany_n for_o the_o wrong_n offer_v unto_o philip_n the_o landgrave_n and_o never_o after_o that_o return_v he_o into_o germany_n again_o 4._o of_o the_o success_n of_o the_o battle_n in_o france_n and_o low_a germany_n they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o brag_v henry_n the_o 4._o ●ow_o king_n of_o france_n and_o navarre_n when_o he_o profess_v and_o maintain_v the_o gospel_n be_v always_o superior_a in_o battle_n and_o how_o the_o war_n have_v prosper_v on_o the_o protestant_n side_n in_o the_o low_a country_n no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a so_o that_o if_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v by_o the_o good_a success_n if_o they_o have_v no_o other_o argument_n to_o defend_v themselves_o this_o may_v plead_v for_o they_o that_o god_n have_v above_o these_o 30._o year_n uphold_v that_o small_a country_n miraculous_o against_o all_o the_o power_n of_o spain_n but_o they_o have_v diverse_a reason_n beside_o which_o may_v justify_v their_o war_n against_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n 1._o the_o break_n of_o their_o privilege_n by_o the_o duke_n of_o albany_n 2._o the_o unreasonable_a exact_v of_o tribute_n upon_o thing_n which_o be_v sell_v spain_n 3._o the_o unjust_a execution_n of_o diverse_a both_o noble_a and_o other_o 4._o the_o set_n of_o garrison_n of_o stranger_n in_o their_o city_n 5._o the_o building_n of_o castle_n and_o sconce_n 6._o the_o constitute_v of_o judge_n of_o the_o spaniard_n and_o not_o of_o their_o own_o country_n 7._o the_o general_a restrain_v of_o their_o liberty_n polan_n p._n 1070._o 8._o beside_o the_o bring_n in_o among_o they_o of_o a_o strange_a religion_n 2._o now_o that_o outward_a prosperity_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o god_n favour_n or_o a_o mark_n whereby_o to_o discern_v the_o church_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o example_n of_o antiochus_n here_o who_o mighty_o prosper_v in_o his_o wicked_a attempt_n against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n so_o also_o nebuchadnezzer_n prevail_v against_o jerusalem_n and_o destroy_v the_o very_a temple_n all_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n be_v assemble_v together_o against_o the_o child_n of_o benjamin_n have_v the_o better_a cause_n yet_o be_v twice_o overcome_v judg._n 20._o god_n then_o in_o suffer_v his_o church_n to_o be_v for_o a_o time_n afflict_a and_o oppress_v do_v not_o thereby_o testify_v his_o favour_n towards_o their_o oppressor_n but_o do_v rather_o show_v his_o wrath_n against_o his_o own_o people_n for_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o antiochus_n prosper_v who_o the_o lord_n use_v as_o his_o scourge_n as_o it_o be_v here_o say_v till_o wrath_n be_v accomplish_v that_o be_v god_n wrath_n kindle_v against_o his_o people_n and_o the_o same_o be_v one_o of_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n shall_v suffer_v antichrist_n to_o rage_n in_o the_o world_n whereof_o more_o shall_v be_v here_o insert_v in_o the_o next_o
the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n which_o he_o carry_v into_o the_o land_n of_o shinar_n to_o the_o house_n of_o his_o god_n 15._o qu._n of_o the_o land_n of_o shinar_n or_o shingar_fw-la 16._o qu._n of_o the_o god_n and_o idol_n of_o the_o chaldee_n 17._o qu._n v._n 2._o what_o be_v to_o be_v commend_v what_o discommend_v in_o nabuchadnezzer_n in_o carry_v part_n of_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n 18._o qu._n why_o it_o please_v god_n to_o suffer_v that_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n shall_v be_v carry_v away_o 19_o qu._n of_o ashpenaz_n the_o master_n of_o the_o eunuch_n his_o name_n and_o office_n 20._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n may_v be_v prove_v from_o hence_o to_o have_v be_v a_o eunuch_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n 21._o qu._n who_o be_v understand_v here_o by_o the_o prince_n 22._o qu._n why_o the_o child_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o noble_n be_v take_v captive_n 23._o qu._n how_o the_o lord_n perform_v his_o promise_n to_o david_n that_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v establish_v for_o ever_o 2._o sam._n 16._o see_v lehoiakim_n be_v give_v into_o nabuchadnezzers_n hand_n 24._o qu._n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o daniel_n to_o be_v teach_v the_o learning_n of_o the_o chaldean_n 25._o qu._n of_o the_o chalde_n language_n and_o the_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o the_o hebrew_n 26._o qu._n of_o the_o necessary_a institution_n of_o school_n and_o the_o manner_n and_o order_n thereof_o 27._o qu._n why_o other_o name_n be_v give_v they_o 28._o qu._n of_o the_o signification_n of_o their_o name_n both_o the_o new_a and_o the_o old_a 29._o qu._n v._n 8._o why_o daniel_n refuse_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o king_n meat_n and_o of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o abstinence_n 30._o qu._n the_o cause_n which_o move_v daniel_n to_o forbear_v the_o king_n meat_n 31._o qu._n v._n 8._o how_o daniel_n shall_v have_v be_v defile_v with_o the_o king_n meat_n 32._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n ever_o after_o abstain_v from_o the_o king_n meat_n 32._o qu._n v._n 9_o what_o favour_v it_o be_v which_o daniel_n find_v with_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o eunuch_n not_o obey_v his_o request_n 33._o qu._n of_o daniel_n request_n to_o the_o butler_n 34._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n tempt_v not_o god_n in_o set_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o day_n 35._o qu._n why_o daniel_n do_v choose_v rather_o to_o eat_v of_o pulse_n then_o of_o the_o king_n meat_n 36._o qu._n vers_fw-la 15._o whether_o the_o beauty_n and_o strength_n in_o daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n feed_v on_o this_o course_n food_n be_v a_o natural_a work_n 37._o qu._n v._n 17._o of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n which_o god_n give_v unto_o daniel_n and_o the_o other_o three_o whether_o it_o be_v natural_a or_o supernatural_a 38._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n learn_v the_o curious_a art_n of_o the_o chaldean_n 39_o qu._n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v the_o art_n and_o invention_n of_o the_o heathen_a 40._o qu._n of_o the_o dream_n and_o vision_n which_o daniel_n have_v understand_v of_o 41._o qu._n whether_o this_o gift_n of_o understand_v vision_n and_o dream_n be_v in_o daniel_n as_o a_o habit_n permanent_a and_o remain_v always_o in_o he_o 42._o qu._n of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o dream_n 43._o qu._n whether_o there_o be_v any_o divine_a dream_n 44._o qu._n whether_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n or_o certainty_n in_o dream_n 45._o qu._n of_o the_o cause_n of_o true_a dream_n 46._o qu._n how_o diabolical_a and_o divine_a dream_n may_v be_v discern_v 47._o qu._n why_o it_o please_v god_n by_o vision_n and_o dream_n to_o instruct_v his_o servant_n 48._o qu._n why_o vision_n and_o dream_n be_v often_o show_v unto_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a man_n 49._o qu._n why_o dream_n be_v not_o always_o clear_a and_o manifest_a but_o dark_o and_o obscure_o propound_v 50._o qu._n what_o dream_n may_v be_v observe_v and_o by_o who_o 51._o qu._n whether_o in_o divine_a dream_n there_o be_v a_o free_a use_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o will_n and_o the_o same_o acceptable_a to_o god_n 52._o qu._n v._n 21._o how_o daniel_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v unto_o the_o first_o year_n of_o king_n cyrus_n question_n upon_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n v._n 1._o how_o the_o second_o year_n be_v to_o be_v count_v wherein_o nabuchadnezzer_n have_v this_o dream_n 2._o qu._n what_o nabuchadnezzer_n this_o be_v and_o whence_o he_o be_v so_o call_v 3._o qu._n v._n 1._o why_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v dream_v dream_n 4._o qu._n what_o manner_n of_o dream_n this_o be_v which_o nabuchadnezzer_n have_v 5._o qu._n why_o it_o please_v god_n to_o send_v this_o dream_n upon_o nabuchadnezzer_n 6._o qu._n v._n 1._o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n and_o his_o sleep_n be_v upon_o he_o 7._o qu._n of_o the_o four_o kind_n of_o wise_a man_n who_o the_o king_n send_v for_o 8._o qu._n why_o daniel_n be_v not_o call_v and_o send_v for_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chaldean_n 9_o qu._n v._n 4._o of_o the_o aramite_n language_n whether_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o hebrew_n and_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o chalde_n 10._o qu._n why_o the_o chaldean_n speak_v in_o the_o aramite_n language_n 11._o qu._n v._n 8._o why_o the_o king_n say_v they_o will_v gain_v or_o redeem_v time_n 12._o qu._n v._n 10._o of_o the_o chaldean_n answer_n unto_o the_o king_n 13._o qu._n of_o the_o imposture_n and_o falsehood_n in_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o chaldean_n 14._o qu._n what_o the_o chaldean_n mean_v in_o these_o word_n except_o the_o god_n who_o dwelling_n be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n 15._o qu._n v._n 12._o of_o the_o king_n rash_a sentence_n in_o command_v all_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o babylon_n to_o be_v slay_v 16._o qu._n v._n 13._o whether_o the_o wise_a man_n indeed_o be_v slay_v 17._o qu._n what_o office_n ario●h_v have_v to_o who_o daniel_n make_v this_o motion_n v_o 14._o 18._o qu._n v._n 15._o how_o daniel_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o king_n decree_n against_o the_o soothsaier_n 19_o qu._n v._n 19_o how_o this_o secret_n be_v reveal_v unto_o daniel_n in_o the_o night_n 20._o qu._n of_o the_o form_n and_o order_n of_o daniel_n thanksgiving_n 21._o qu._n v._n 19_o how_o daniel_n be_v say_v to_o have_v bless_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 22._o qu._n vers_fw-la 21._o how_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o change_v time_n and_o season_n 23._o qu._n v._n 22._o what_o secret_a thing_n the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o discover_v 24._o qu._n v._n 22._o how_o light_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v with_o god_n whereas_o it_o be_v say_v psal._n 18._o 11._o he_o make_v darkness_n his_o secret_a place_n 25._o qu._n v._n 24._o whether_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o stay_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o king_n sentence_n upon_o the_o wise_a man_n 26._o qu._n v._n 25._o whether_o arioch_n lie_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o say_v i_o have_v find_v a_o man_n 27._o qu._n v._n 25._o why_o arioch_n name_v daniel_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o captive_n rather_o then_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n 28._o qu._n v._n 26._o how_o the_o king_n be_v say_v to_o answer_v no_o question_n be_v demand_v 29._o qu._n v._n 27._o why_o daniel_n deny_v that_o any_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n can_v expound_v this_o dream_n 30._o qu._n v._n 28._o whether_o god_n only_o be_v the_o revealer_n of_o secret_n and_o thing_n to_o come_v 31._o qu._n v._n 28._o what_o daniel_n mean_v by_o the_o latter_a day_n 32._o qu._n v._n 29._o whether_o nebuchadnezer_n thought_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o dream_n 33._o qu._n v._n 29._o why_o it_o please_v god_n to_o impart_v unto_o nebuchadnezer_n this_o dream_n 34._o qu._n v._n 30._o this_o secret_a be_v not_o show_v i_o for_o my_o wisdom_n whether_o daniel_n by_o any_o natural_a wisdom_n can_v have_v obtain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o dream_n 35._o qu._n v._n 30._o why_o nebuchadnezer_n can_v not_o understand_v the_o dream_n which_o he_o see_v 36._o qu._n v._n 30._o of_o the_o two_o end_n why_o it_o please_v god_n to_o reveal_v unto_o the_o king_n his_o dream_n 37._o qu._n v._n 31._o of_o the_o vision_n which_o the_o king_n see_v in_o his_o dream_n the_o manner_n &_o part_n thereof_o 38._o qu._n of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o sign_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o of_o which_o kind_n this_o image_n be_v 39_o qu._n what_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o this_o vision_n 40._o qu._n v._n 8._o why_o the_o chaldean_a monarchy_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o head_n of_o gold_n 41._o qu._n of_o the_o largeness_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o dominion_n of_o nebuchadnezer_n 42._o qu._n whether_o nebuchadnezer_n dominion_n be_v at_o that_o time_n the_o great_a in_o the_o world_n 43._o qu._n v._n 39_o of_o the_o second_o monarchy_n describe_v by_o
of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n according_a to_o the_o request_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o 19_o qu._n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n v_o 14._o &_o appoint_v over_o it_o the_o most_o abject_a of_o man_n 20._o qu._n why_o daniel_n hold_v his_o peace_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hour_n 21._o q._n v_o 16._o in_o what_o sense_n daniel_n wish_v this_o dream_n to_o the_o king_n enemy_n 22._o qu._n that_o a_o tyrannical_a government_n be_v better_a than_o a_o anarchy_n or_o no_o government_n 23._o qu._n v._n 20._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o hew_v down_o the_o tree_n 24._o qu._n v._n 22._o how_o nebuchadnezzer_n be_v drive_v from_o among_o man_n &_o dwell_v with_o beast_n 25._o qu._n how_o nebuchadnezzer_n do_v eat_v grass_n like_o a_o ox_n 26._o qu._n how_o the_o kingdom_n of_o babylon_n be_v govern_v in_o nebuchadnezzers_n absence_n 27._o qu._n v._n 22._o what_o be_v understand_v by_o 7._o time_n 28._o qu._n of_o nebuchadnezer_n transmutation_n but_o first_o in_o general_a of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o transmutation_n 29._o qu._n what_o manner_n of_o change_n nebuchadnezer_n be_v 30._o qu._n how_o nebuchadnezzers_n body_n be_v change_v 31._o qu._n v._n 24._o how_o daniel_n give_v counsel_n to_o the_o king_n to_o prevent_v this_o judgement_n see_v it_o be_v determine_v 32._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n do_v counsel_v the_o king_n to_o redeem_v his_o sin_n by_o alm_n deed_n 33._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n speak_v doubtful_o say_v v_o 24._o it_o may_v be_v thy_o prosperity_n may_v be_v prolong_v 34._o qu._n whether_o nebuchadnezer_n do_v follow_v daniel_n counsel_n 35._o qu._n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o city_n of_o babylon_n 36._o qu._n whether_o nebuchadnezer_n be_v the_o builder_n of_o babel_n 37._o qu._n of_o nebuchadnezer_n pride_n in_o say_v which_o i_o have_v build_v for_o the_o house_n of_o etc._n etc._n 38._o qu._n what_o manner_n of_o voice_n it_o be_v which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n 39_o qu._n the_o sum_n of_o the_o sentence_n denounce_v against_o nebu●hadnezer_n 40._o qu._n v._n 30._o of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sentence_n upon_o nebuchadnezer_n he_o do_v eat_v grass_n etc._n etc._n 41._o qu._n v._n 31._o after_o the_o end_n of_o what_o day_n nebuchadnezer_n be_v restore_v 42._o qu._n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o nebuchadnezer_n 43._o qu._n that_o god_n only_o be_v without_o check_n and_o not_o to_o be_v control_v in_o his_o work_n 44._o qu._n whether_o nebuchadnezer_n be_v save_v 45._o qu._n why_o nebucdadnezer_n be_v save_v and_o not_o pharaoh_n both_o be_v in_o the_o same_o cause_n 46._o qu._n why_o nebuchadnezer_n be_v thus_o convert_v the_o jew_n keep_v in_o captivity_n be_v not_o deliver_v nor_o jeho●akim_n release_v out_o of_o prison_n question_n upon_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n why_o this_o chapter_n be_v transpose_v and_o no●_n set_v down_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o time_n 2._o qu._n of_o the_o king_n of_o chalde_n which_o succeed_v after_o nebuchadnezer_n 3._o qu._n of_o the_o diverse_a name_n of_o this_o balthasar_n 4._o qu._n in_o what_o year_n of_o balthazar_n be_v reign_v this_o history_n fall_v out_o 5._o qu._n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o balthazar_n be_v feast_v 6._o qu._n of_o the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o this_o feast_n 7._o qu._n of_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o feast_n 8._o qu._n who_o command_v the_o vessel_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o be_v bring_v and_o how_o 9_o qu._n of_o balthazar_n be_v profane_v of_o the_o holy_a vessel_n 10._o qu._n whether_o nebuchadnezer_n do_v not_o likewise_o profane_a the_o vessel_n in_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o his_o idol_n temple_n 11._o qu._n of_o the_o blind_a and_o obscene_a idolatry_n of_o the_o chaldean_n 12._o qu._n how_o far_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o apply_v some_o thing_n to_o profane_a use_n 13._o qu._n of_o the_o finger_n which_o appear_v on_o the_o wall_n how_o they_o be_v cause_v 14._o qu._n whether_o it_o be_v the_o likeness_n of_o a_o hand_n only_o and_o see_v of_o balthasar_n alone_o 15._o qu._n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o apparition_n of_o this_o hand_n 16._o qu._n why_o the_o hand_n appear_v over_o against_o the_o candle_n stick_v 17._o qu._n of_o balthazar_n be_v sudden_a fear_n and_o the_o manner_n thereof_o 18._o qu._n v._n 7._o why_o daniel_n be_v not_o here_o call_v among_o the_o rest_n 19_o qu._n how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o wise_a man_n can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o read_v the_o write_n 20._o qu._n what_o queen_n it_o be_v which_o come_v in_o 21._o qu._n in_o what_o sense_n nabuchadnezzar_n be_v call_v balthazar_n be_v father_v 22._o qu._n of_o the_o queen_n oration_n to_o the_o king_n 23._o qu._n of_o the_o excellent_a wisdom_n and_o other_o princely_a part_n in_o this_o old_a queen_n 24._o qu._n of_o belshazars_n speech_n unto_o daniel_n 25._o qu._n of_o daniel_n answer_n to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o 26._o qu._n of_o daniel_n abrupt_a beginning_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o king_n v_o 17._o keep_v thy_o reward_n to_o thyself_o 27._o qu._n why_o daniel_n reject_v the_o king_n reward_n 28._o qu._n why_o daniel_n receive_v the_o like_a reward_n from_o nebuchadnezer_n and_o refuse_v they_o from_o balthasar_n 29._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n after_o his_o refusal_n accept_v afterward_o of_o these_o reward_n v_o 29._o 30._o qu._n whether_o in_o these_o word_n he_o put_v to_o death_n who_o he_o will_v v_o 19_o nebuchadnezzars_n tyrannical_a government_n be_v express_v 31._o qu._n of_o the_o writing_n and_o interpretation_n thereof_o in_o general_n 32._o qu._n of_o the_o interpretation_n by_o write_v in_o general_n 33._o qu._n why_o the_o first_o word_n mene_n be_v double_v 34._o qu._n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n tekel_n 35._o qu._n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n pheres_n 36._o qu._n of_o the_o tropological_a that_o be_v the_o moral_a application_n of_o this_o vision_n 37._o qu._n why_o balthasar_n command_v daniel_n to_o be_v honour_v hear_v so_o evil_a news_n 38._o qu._n of_o the_o honour_n here_o bestow_v upon_o daniel_n 39_o qu._n whether_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o accept_v of_o these_o honour_n 40._o qu._n why_o daniel_n exhort_v not_o balthasar_n to_o repentance_n as_o he_o have_v do_v nebushadnezzar_n before_o 41._o qu._n v._n 30._o whether_o balthasar_n be_v slay_v at_o that_o time_n 42._o qu._n whether_o balthasar_n be_v slay_v the_o same_o night_n and_o the_o city_n take_v 43._o qu._n whether_o balthasar_n be_v take_v in_o babylon_n 44._o qu._n by_o what_o mean_v babylon_n be_v take_v 45._o qu._n by_o who_o balthasar_n be_v slay_v 46._o qu._n by_o who_o the_o city_n of_o babylon_n be_v take_v 47._o qu._n who_o be_v chief_a in_o the_o take_n of_o babylon_n darius_n or_o cyrus_n and_o why_o mention_n be_v make_v only_o of_o darius_n 48._o qu._n of_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o babylonian_a war_n 49._o qu._n whether_o babylon_n be_v at_o this_o time_n final_o destroy_v according_a to_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n 50._o qu._n how_o long_o the_o chaldean_a empire_n and_o monarchy_n continue_v 51._o qu._n of_o the_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o several_a king_n of_o babylon_n question_n upon_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n what_o darius_n this_o be_v which_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o babylon_n 2._o qu._n of_o the_o diverse_a name_n which_o darius_n have_v 3._o qu._n how_o darius_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o babylon_n 4._o qu._n when_o darius_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o chaldean_n 5._o qu._n of_o the_o officer_n which_o darius_n appoint_v and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o 6._o qu._n whether_o darius_n do_v wise_o in_o think_v to_o set_v daniel_n be_v a_o stranger_n over_o the_o whole_a realm_n v_o 3._o 7._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o bear_v office_n in_o a_o idolatrous_a king_n court_n 8._o qu._n how_o the_o ruler_n fail_v in_o their_o purpose_n find_v no_o fault_n at_o all_o in_o daniel_n 9_o qu._n of_o the_o edict_n and_o decree_n make_v to_o entangle_v daniel_n the_o occasion_n thereof_o and_o injustice_n therein_o 10._o qu._n of_o the_o immutable_a decree_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n v_o 8._o 11._o qu._n why_o daniel_n do_v not_o stay_v the_o king_n decree_n by_o his_o contrary_a advice_n 12._o qu._n of_o daniel_n constancy_n of_o pray_v with_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o 13._o qu._n how_o daniel_n custom_n in_o open_v the_o window_n when_o he_o pray_v agree_v with_o our_o saviour_n precept_n matth._n 6._o to_o shut_v the_o door_n of_o the_o chamber_n in_o prayer_n 14._o qu._n why_o daniel_n open_v the_o window_n of_o his_o chamber_n towards_o jerusalem_n 15._o qu._n why_o daniel_n pray_v thrice_o in_o a_o day_n 16._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o this_o
pray_n to_o offer_v himself_o to_o public_a danger_n 17._o qu._n of_o daniel_n adversary_n practice_v and_o accusation_n against_o he_o 18._o qu._n how_o the_o king_n labour_v to_o deliver_v daniel_n till_o the_o sun_n go_v down_o 19_o qu._n whether_o darius_n may_v not_o have_v break_v this_o decree_n 20._o qu._n whether_o darius_n prayer_n for_o daniel_n be_v of_o faith_n 21._o qu._n v._n 17._o why_o the_o king_n seal_v the_o stone_n with_o his_o seal_n 22._o qu._n whether_o darius_n be_v true_o convert_v confess_v daniel_n god_n to_o be_v the_o live_a god_n 23._o qu._n of_o daniel_n deliverance_n from_o the_o lion_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o 24._o qu._n of_o daniel_n salutation_n to_o the_o king_n o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o 25._o qu._n of_o daniel_n manner_n of_o deliverance_n from_o the_o lion_n that_o it_o be_v divine_a &_o extraordinary_a 26._o qu._n why_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o always_o send_v his_o child_n temporal_a deliverance_n 27._o qu._n of_o darius_n joy_n v_o 23._o than_o be_v the_o king_n exceed_v glad_a 28._o qu._n whether_o the_o king_n do_v just_o in_o cause_v daniel_n accuser_n with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o den_n 29._o qu._n of_o king_n darius_n decree_n concern_v the_o worship_v of_o daniel_n god_n the_o order_n and_o part_n thereof_o 30._o qu._n of_o daniel_n prosperous_a estate_n under_o darius_n and_o cyrus_n 31._o qu._n whether_o this_o miracle_n of_o daniel_n deliverance_n from_o the_o lion_n be_v show_v at_o babylon_n in_o chaldea_n or_o in_o media_n question_n upon_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n of_o the_o order_n observe_v by_o daniel_n in_o the_o set_n down_o of_o these_o vision_n 2._o qu._n of_o the_o vision_n which_o follow_v in_o general_n 3._o qu._n of_o vision_n in_o general_n 4._o qu._n of_o the_o time_n when_o this_o vision_n be_v reveal_v unto_o daniel_n 5._o qu._n why_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n be_v again_o reveal_v unto_o daniel_n be_v show_v before_o to_o nabuchadnezzar_n c._n 2._o 6._o qu._n what_o manner_n of_o vision_n this_o be_v which_o daniel_n here_o have_v and_o how_o it_o be_v reveal_v 7._o qu._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o four_o wind_n which_o strive_v together_o upon_o the_o sea_n 8._o qu._n of_o the_o description_n of_o these_o beast_n in_o general_n 9_o qu._n why_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v liken_v unto_o beast_n 10._o qu._n of_o the_o agreement_n between_o this_o vision_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o that_o of_o the_o image_n show_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n c._n 2._o 11._o qu._n of_o the_o first_o beast_n represent_v the_o chaldean_a monarchy_n 12._o qu._n where_o the_o chaldean_a monarchy_n here_o describe_v must_v take_v beginning_n 13._o qu._n of_o the_o second_o beast_n and_o why_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o bear_n 14._o qu._n why_o the_o bear_n be_v say_v to_o stand_v upon_o the_o one_o side_n 15._o qu._n of_o the_o three_o rib_n in_o his_o mouth_n what_o they_o signify_v 16._o qu._n who_o say_v unto_o he_o arise_v and_o devour_v etc._n etc._n v._n 5._o 17._o qu._n of_o the_o persian_a king_n with_o who_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n begin_v and_o end_v 18._o qu._n of_o the_o three_o beast_n call_v a_o leopard_n the_o description_n of_o the_o three_o monarchy_n 19_o qu._n why_o the_o four_o beast_n have_v no_o name_n 20._o qu._n of_o the_o description_n of_o the_o 4._o beast_n in_o general_n 21._o qu._n whether_o the_o roman_a or_o turkish_a empire_n be_v signify_v by_o this_o four_o beast_n 22._o qu._n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o syria_n which_o be_v hold_v by_o seleucus_n and_o his_o posterity_n be_v this_o four_o beast_n 23._o qu._n of_o the_o iron_n tooth_n and_o other_o part_n of_o the_o general_a description_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n 24._o qu._n why_o it_o be_v say_v to_o stamp_v the_o residue_n under_o the_o foot_n 25._o qu._n wherein_o this_o four_o beast_n be_v unlike_o the_o rest_n v_o 7._o 26._o qu._n of_o the_o ten_o horn_n what_o be_v signify_v thereby_o v_o 7._o 27._o qu._n who_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o little_a horn_n ver_fw-la 8._o 28._o qu._n who_o these_o three_o king_n shall_v be_v signify_v by_o the_o three_o horn_n pluck_v away_o 29._o qu._n of_o other_o property_n of_o this_o little_a horn_n 30._o qu._n of_o the_o description_n of_o the_o glorious_a manner_n of_o god_n judgement_n express_v v_o 9_o to_o v_o 15._o 31._o qu._n whether_o the_o final_a judgement_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v here_o describe_v 32._o qu._n v._n 9_o who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o how_o 33._o qu._n how_o god_n be_v see_v of_o daniel_n which_o be_v invisible_a 34._o qu._n how_o judgement_n be_v say_v to_o be_v set_v see_v god_n be_v judge_v from_o everlasting_a 35._o qu._n what_o the_o fire_n signify_v which_o issue_v from_o the_o throne_n 36._o qu._n of_o the_o number_n of_o angel_n that_o minister_v unto_o god_n thousand_o thousand_o etc._n etc._n ver_fw-la 10._o 37._o qu._n what_o book_n these_o be_v which_o be_v open_v v_o 10._o 38._o qu._n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n 39_o qu._n why_o t●e_v other_o beast_n have_v their_o dominion_n take_v away_o and_o how_o their_o life_n be_v prolong_v 40._o qu._n v._n 13._o why_o it_o be_v say_v one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 41._o qu._n how_o he_o be_v say_v to_o come_v in_o the_o cloud_n and_o approach_v to_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o when_o 42._o qu._n that_o this_o kingdom_n can_v not_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o macchabee_n 43._o qu._n that_o this_o kingdom_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n 44._o qu._n that_o this_o kingdom_n give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o earth_n against_o the_o chiliastes_n 45._o qu._n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n beyond_o other_o kingdom_n 46._o qu._n how_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v everlasting_a see_v it_o shall_v be_v deliver_v up_o unto_o god_n 1._o cor._n 15._o 24._o 47._o qu._n v._n 17._o of_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n 48._o qu._n who_o shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o saint_n 49._o qu._n why_o they_o be_v call_v the_o most_o high_a saint_n v_o 18._o 50._o qu._n v._n 20._o how_o the_o horn_n call_v before_o little_a be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o show_n great_a than_o the_o rest_n 51._o qu._n how_o this_o little_a horn_n be_v say_v to_o change_v law_n and_o time_n 52._o qu._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o a_o time_n time_n and_o a_o part_n of_o time_n v_o 25._o 53._o qu._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o half_a or_o divide_v of_o time_n v_o 25._o 54._o qu._n how_o this_o kingdom_n be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o holy_a people_n v_o 27._o which_o be_v say_v v_o 14._o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n question_n upon_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n the_o difference_n between_o this_o vision_n and_o the_o former_a 2._o qu._n of_o the_o time_n of_o this_o vision_n 3._o qu._n what_o manner_n of_o vision_n this_o be_v 4._o qu._n how_o daniel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o sushan_n ver_fw-la 2._o 5._o qu._n of_o the_o city_n sushan_n by_o who_o it_o be_v build_v and_o whence_o so_o name_v 6._o qu._n of_o the_o situation_n of_o the_o city_n sushan_n 7._o qu._n of_o the_o river_n vlai_n where_o daniel_n have_v this_o vision_n 8._o qu._n why_o daniel_n name_v himself_o in_o the_o first_o person_n 9_o qu._n why_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o ram_n v_o 3._o 10._o qu._n who_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o two_o horn_n whereof_o one_o be_v high_a than_o the_o other_o 11._o qu._n of_o the_o greatness_n and_o prosperous_a success_n of_o this_o ram_n 12._o qu._n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n as_o i_o consider_v v_o 5._o 13._o qu._n why_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o grecian_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o goat_n 14._o qu._n of_o alexander_n the_o great_a signify_v by_o the_o horn_n between_o the_o eye_n his_o birth_n education_n exploit_n death_n and_o end_n 15._o qu._n of_o the_o victory_n of_o alexander_n against_o darius_n describe_v by_o the_o goat_n overcome_v the_o ram_n 16._o qu._n of_o the_o break_n of_o this_o great_a horn_n and_o of_o the_o death_n of_o alexander_n 17._o qu._n of_o the_o four_o horn_n which_o come_v up_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o this_o great_a horn_n 18._o qu._n when_o these_o four_o kingdom_n do_v arise_v after_o the_o great_a horn_n be_v break_v 19_o qu._n who_o be_v this_o little_a horn_n v_o 9_o 20._o qu._n of_o the_o outrage_n commit_v by_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n signify_v by_o this_o little_a horn_n 21._o qu._n
be_v understand_v 63._o qu._n shall_v messiah_n be_v slay_v v_o 26._o who_o this_o messiah_n be_v that_o shall_v be_v slay_v 64._o qu._n and_o he_o shall_v have_v nothing_o or_o rather_o not_o for_o himself_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n 65._o qu._n of_o the_o year_n of_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 66._o qu._n of_o the_o computation_n of_o year_n from_o the_o creation_n to_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 67._o qu._n in_o what_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o herod_n our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v bear_v 68_o qu._n in_o what_o year_n of_o his_o age_n christ_n be_v baptize_v 69._o qu._n how_o many_o year_n christ_n live_v on_o earth_n and_o in_o what_o year_n of_o his_o life_n christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n 70._o qu._n of_o the_o number_n of_o pasches_n which_o christ_n solemnize_v in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n whereby_o the_o time_n and_o year_n of_o his_o preach_n be_v certain_o gather_v 71._o qu._n at_o what_o time_n of_o the_o year_n christ_n be_v bear_v 72._o qu._n of_o the_o space_n and_o distance_n of_o time_n that_o be_v between_o christ_n baptism_n and_o his_o passion_n 73._o qu._n upon_o what_o day_n of_o the_o week_n christ_n suffer_v and_o whether_o upon_o a_o festival_n day_n 74._o qu._n who_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o people_n of_o the_o prince_n to_o come_v 75._o qu._n how_o long_o after_o the_o messiah_n be_v slay_v this_o destruction_n happen_v by_o titus_n 76._o qu._n why_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n here_o see_v it_o be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o 70._o week_n 77._o qu._n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n v_o 26._o the_o end_n thereof_o shall_v be_v with_o a_o flood_n and_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o battle_n it_o shall_v be_v destroy_v 78._o qu._n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n not_o of_o the_o roman_n be_v here_o signify_v 79._o qu._n of_o the_o most_o grievous_a calamity_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o final_a destruction_n of_o their_o city_n 80._o qu._n that_o all_o this_o misery_n come_v upon_o the_o jew_n for_o put_v to_o death_n the_o messiah_n 81._o qu._n he_o shall_v confirm_v the_o covenant_n with_o many_o for_o one_o week_n how_o this_o one_o week_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v 82._o qu._n what_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o covenant_n 83._o qu._n how_o this_o covenant_n be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v 84._o qu._n when_o this_o testament_n begin_v to_o be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o christ._n 85._o qu._n v._n 27._o in_o the_o half_a of_o the_o week_n he_o shall_v cause_v the_o sacrifice_n to_o cease_v when_o this_o half_a week_n begin_v 86._o qu._n how_o and_o when_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v cause_v to_o cease_v and_o be_v abolish_v 87._o qu._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o overspread_a of_o abomination_n v_o 27._o of_o the_o best_a read_v thereof_o 88_o qu._n what_o this_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n be_v 89._o qu._n v._n 27._o whether_o the_o desolation_n of_o jerusalem_n here_o speak_v of_o shall_v be_v final_a question_n upon_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o vision_n reveal_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o the_o two_o next_o unto_o daniel_n 2._o qu._n how_o the_o three_o year_n of_o cyrus_n be_v here_o to_o be_v understand_v 3._o qu._n of_o daniel_n understand_v of_o this_o vision_n 4._o qu._n v._n 1._o why_o daniel_n make_v mention_n of_o his_o name_n belteshazar_n 5._o qu._n v._n 2._o why_o daniel_n be_v so_o long_o in_o heaviness_n 6._o qu._n of_o the_o time_n that_o daniel_n mourn_v which_o be_v three_o week_n of_o day_n 7._o qu._n of_o daniel_n abstinency_n 8._o qu._n of_o the_o custom_n and_o use_n of_o anoint_v which_o daniel_n also_o forbear_v 9_o qu._n of_o the_o river_n hiddekel_n where_o daniel_n have_v this_o vision_n 10._o qu._n whether_o daniel_n be_v only_o in_o spirit_n or_o bodily_a present_n by_o the_o river_n tigris_n 11._o qu._n why_o this_o vision_n be_v show_v unto_o daniel_n by_o the_o river_n tigris_n 12._o qu._n whether_o it_o be_v a_o angel_n or_o christ_n which_o appear_v here_o unto_o daniel_n 13._o qu._n of_o the_o description_n of_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n appear_v and_o first_o of_o his_o apparel_n 14._o qu._n of_o the_o glorious_a part_n of_o this_o heavenly_a body_n which_o appear_v unto_o daniel_n 15._o qu._n how_o daniel_n be_v say_v to_o see_v the_o vision_n alone_o 16._o qu._n the_o cause_n of_o daniel_n great_a fear_n 17._o qu._n who_o hand_n it_o be_v that_o touch_v daniel_n 18._o qu._n why_o daniel_n prayer_n be_v hear_v at_o the_o first_o yet_o the_o angel_n come_v be_v defer_v 21._o day_n v_o 12._o 19_o qu._n what_o it_o be_v that_o daniel_n pray_v for_o and_o how_o he_o be_v hear_v 20._o qu._n who_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o persia._n 21._o qu._n how_o the_o prince_n of_o persia_n be_v say_v to_o have_v withstand_v the_o angel_n 22._o qu._n who_o this_o michael_n be_v which_o help_v the_o angel_n 23._o qu._n how_o michael_n help_v the_o other_o angel_n 24._o qu._n how_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o be_v leave_v with_o the_o king_n of_o persia._n 25._o qu._n who_o it_o be_v who_o daniel_n call_v lord_n v_o 17._o 26._o qu._n who_o it_o be_v that_o have_v this_o communication_n with_o daniel_n in_o this_o vision_n 27._o qu._n who_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o grecia_n 28._o qu._n of_o the_o original_n of_o the_o grecian_n here_o call_v javan_n v_o 21._o 29._o qu._n in_o what_o sense_n the_o angel_n say_v that_o none_o hold_v with_o he_o but_o michael_n their_o prince_n question_n upon_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o daniel_n 1._o qu._n whether_o this_o vision_n in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o former_a vision_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n 2._o qu._n v._n 1._o who_o it_o be_v that_o here_o say_v i_o stand_v up_o etc._n etc._n 3._o qu._n who_o it_o be_v who_o the_o angel_n stand_v up_o to_o strengthen_v 4._o qu._n why_o the_o persian_a monarchy_n be_v so_o brief_o touch_v and_o the_o grecian_n set_v forth_o at_o large_a 5._o qu._n that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o three_o king_n of_o persia_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 6._o qu._n who_o be_v those_o four_o king_n of_o persia_n here_o name_v 7._o qu._n of_o the_o four_o king_n of_o persia_n his_o riches_n and_o power_n 8._o qu._n why_o the_o angel_n leave_v at_o the_o four_o king_n of_o persia_n see_v there_o we●e_v more_o 9_o qu._n a_o brief_a description_n of_o the_o rise_n and_o fall_v of_o alexander_n kingdom_n 10._o qu._n of_o alexander_n birth_n and_o education_n act_n and_o life_n end_n and_o death_n abridge_v 11._o qu._n of_o the_o 4._o successor_n of_o alexander_n 12._o qu._n how_o all_o alexander_n posterity_n be_v root_v out_o that_o none_o of_o they_o succeed_v in_o the_o kingdom_n 13._o qu._n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n v_o 4._o it_o shall_v be_v for_o other_o beside_o these_o 14._o qu._n of_o the_o petty_a division_n of_o alexander_n kingdom_n among_o his_o several_a captain_n before_o it_o grow_v into_o four_o and_o of_o their_o mutual_a dissension_n 15._o qu._n why_o the_o angel_n prosecute_v the_o story_n only_o of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n and_o of_o the_o north_n omit_v the_o rest_n 16._o qu._n of_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n and_o syria_n of_o who_o daniel_n propehsy_v in_o this_o chapter_n 17._o qu._n of_o the_o first_o ptolemy_n call_v here_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n 18._o qu._n v._n 5._o one_o of_o his_o prince_n shall_v prevail_v who_o be_v mean_v hereby_o 19_o qu._n that_o this_o kingdom_n of_o the_o north_n be_v the_o same_o which_o ezekiel_n call_v gog_n and_o magog_n 20._o qu._n of_o the_o first_o variance_n between_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o north_n and_o of_o their_o join_v together_o again_o 21._o qu._n what_o king_n of_o the_o south_n this_o be_v who_o daughter_n come_v to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o north._n 22._o qu._n of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n which_o be_v procure_v by_o this_o ptolemy_n philadelphus_n 23._o qu._n who_o be_v the_o bud_n of_o her_o root_n v._n 7._o and_o of_o his_o exploit_n 24._o qu._n of_o the_o three_o battle_n between_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o north_n v._n 10._o 11._o 12._o 25._o qu._n of_o the_o first_o expedition_n of_o antiochus_n the_o great_a against_o epiphanes_n king_n of_o egypt_n 26._o qu._n of_o the_o second_o expedition_n of_o antiochus_n the_o great_a against_o ptolomeus_n epiphanes_n 27._o qu._n of_o the_o three_o expedition_n of_o antiochus_n megas_n against_o epiphanes_n v_o 17._o
this_o look_v of_o daniel_n towards_o jerusalem_n out_o of_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n teach_v we_o that_o we_o be_v set_v here_o in_o the_o world_n as_o in_o the_o captivity_n of_o babel_n ex_fw-la hac_fw-la confusione_n ad_fw-la calestem_fw-la jerusalem_fw-la respiciamus_fw-la shall_v out_o of_o this_o confuse_a estate_n look_v up_o to_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n pintus_fw-la quest._n 15._o why_o daniel_n pray_v thrice_o in_o a_o day_n 1._o daniel_n do_v not_o make_v choice_n of_o these_o hour_n as_o though_o they_o be_v more_o special_o consecrate_v unto_o prayer_n and_o by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n more_o holiness_n and_o efficacy_n be_v add_v thereunto_o as_o the_o romanist_n have_v such_o a_o superstitious_a conceit_n of_o their_o canonical_a hour_n and_o they_o say_v the_o jew_n observe_v these_o three_o time_n with_o more_o religious_a respect_n as_o the_o three_o hour_n because_o then_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v give_v the_o six_o hour_n because_o then_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v lift_v up_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o the_o nine_o because_o then_o the_o water_n come_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n in_o cade_n and_o so_o christian_n shall_v observe_v the_o same_o three_o time_n the_o three_o hour_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v the_o six_o at_o what_o time_n christ_n be_v crucify_v and_o the_o nine_o when_o the_o water_n gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n pintus_fw-la 2._o but_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n rather_o why_o daniel_n observe_v these_o time_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o time_n wherein_o he_o have_v best_a leisure_n and_o be_v free_a from_o worldly_a business_n which_o be_v the_o morning_n before_o he_o go_v abroad_o at_o noon_n when_o he_o come_v home_o to_o eat_v meat_n as_o joseph_n also_o use_v to_o do_v gen._n 43._o 16._o and_o at_o night_n when_o all_o his_o business_n be_v end_v jun._n beside_o these_o be_v the_o fit_a time_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o benefit_n therein_o receive_v of_o god_n in_o the_o morning_n to_o give_v thanks_n for_o our_o deliverance_n the_o night_n past_a at_o noon_n when_o we_o take_v our_o meat_n and_o at_o night_n for_o our_o preservation_n that_o day_n calv._n of_o these_o three_o time_n david_n make_v mention_v psal._n 55._o 17._o evening_n morning_n and_o at_o noon_n will_v i_o pray_v a_o deo_fw-la initium_fw-la felicem_fw-la successum_fw-la beatum_fw-la exitum_fw-la petimus_fw-la we_o do_v ask_v of_o god_n the_o beginning_n the_o happy_a success_n and_o prosperous_a end_n of_o our_o business_n oecolampad_n 16._o quest._n whether_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o thus_o pray_v to_o offer_v himself_o to_o public_a danger_n it_o will_v be_v object_v that_o daniel_n may_v have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v pray_v in_o secret_a 1._o because_o of_o the_o king_n commandment_n 2._o he_o shall_v have_v have_v herein_o some_o special_a revelation_n 3._o he_o may_v have_v pray_v unto_o god_n though_o he_o have_v not_o do_v it_o so_o open_o see_v the_o external_a worship_n be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a but_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o internal_a whereby_o god_n will_v special_o be_v serve_v 4._o a_o wise_a man_n will_v have_v give_v way_n to_o the_o present_a necessity_n and_o observe_v the_o time_n 5._o by_o this_o mean_v he_o may_v have_v bring_v all_o the_o jew_n into_o danger_n if_o god_n have_v not_o extraordinary_o deliver_v he_o contra._n 1._o the_o king_n commandment_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v not_o contrary_a unto_o god_n commandment_n as_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v for_o the_o lord_n say_v call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n but_o here_o the_o king_n forbid_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v call_v upon_o 2._o daniel_n herein_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o special_a revelation_n have_v the_o general_a word_n of_o god_n as_o deut._n 6._o 12._o 13._o beware_v lest_o thou_o forget_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n etc._n etc._n thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o deut._n 8._o 10._o when_o thou_o have_v eat_v and_o be_v fill_v thou_o shall_v bless_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n 3._o though_o the_o internal_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v most_o necessary_a yet_o the_o other_o be_v necessary_a also_o as_o be_v a_o part_n of_o our_o outward_a confession_n of_o god_n as_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v necessary_a daniel_n shall_v thus_o testify_v his_o worship_n of_o god_n because_o it_o have_v be_v his_o custom_n in_o former_a time_n which_o if_o he_o have_v intermit_v f●isset_fw-la obliqua_fw-la quaedam_fw-la abiuratio_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o have_v be_v a_o indirect_a abiur_n of_o his_o religion_n 4._o in_o civil_a matter_n &_o thing_n indifferent_a it_o be_v good_a to_o give_v way_n unto_o the_o time_n but_o not_o in_o matter_n which_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n 5._o he_o be_v rather_o to_o go_v before_o his_o nation_n in_o constancy_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o give_v they_o a_o good_a example_n whereas_o if_o he_o have_v dissemble_v he_o may_v have_v bring_v they_o all_o into_o the_o same_o dissimulation_n daniel_n then_o herein_o do_v his_o duty_n be_v not_o to_o give_v over_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o danger_n but_o to_o leave_v the_o success_n unto_o god_n but_o that_o daniel_n do_v well_o in_o make_v this_o open_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o happy_a success_n god_n extraordinary_a assistance_n whereby_o the_o lord_n approve_v of_o daniel_n godly_a resolution_n beside_o if_o daniel_n have_v do_v otherwise_o he_o shall_v have_v diverse_o offend_v 1._o against_o god_n in_o prefer_v the_o king_n commandment_n before_o he_o 2._o against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o teach_v we_o that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v 3._o against_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o by_o his_o example_n shall_v have_v be_v much_o hinder_v 4._o against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o offend_v they_o with_o his_o inconstancy_n 5._o and_o against_o his_o own_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v for_o fear_v forbear_v that_o which_o in_o his_o judgement_n he_o allow_v jun._n in_o comment_n quest._n 17._o of_o daniel_n adversary_n practice_v and_o accusation_n against_o he_o 1._o first_o they_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o daniel_n and_o there_o be_v both_o a_o multitude_n of_o they_o which_o conspire_v together_o these_o man_n assemble_v v_o 11._o and_o they_o find_v daniel_n in_o the_o very_a manner_n pray_v unto_o his_o god_n 2._o in_o their_o accusation_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v the_o form_n of_o it_o which_o be_v full_a of_o subtlety_n and_o cunning_a they_o do_v not_o at_o the_o first_o direct_o accuse_v daniel_n because_o they_o know_v he_o be_v favour_v of_o the_o king_n but_o first_o by_o make_v rehearsal_n of_o the_o decree_n in_o general_a they_o draw_v from_o the_o king_n a_o former_a consent_n that_o afterward_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v back_o wherein_o they_o call_v three_o thing_n to_o the_o king_n remembrance_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o ratification_n &_o the_o penalty_n v_o 12._o 3._o the_o matter_n of_o the_o accusation_n be_v against_o daniel_n which_o be_v not_o simple_o do_v but_o with_o diverse_a false_a and_o envious_a suggestion_n envious_a concern_v his_o person_n in_o object_v his_o captivity_n and_o the_o action_n in_o conceal_v to_o who_o he_o make_v his_o petition_n they_o simple_o propound_v it_o he_o make_v his_o petition_n three_o time_n a_o day_n the_o king_n may_v conceive_v that_o he_o may_v make_v it_o to_o some_o other_o man_n their_o suggestion_n be_v false_a as_o though_o daniel_n do_v it_o in_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n law_n 4._o and_o their_o envy_n further_o appear_v in_o these_o two_o thing_n 1._o they_o omit_v to_o make_v mention_n of_o daniel_n virtue_n they_o bury_v they_o all_o in_o oblivion_n and_o pick_v what_o matter_n they_o can_v against_o he_o pintus_fw-la 2._o they_o forget_v that_o daniel_n be_v their_o fellow_n in_o office_n which_o many_o time_n be_v respect_v by_o man_n of_o like_a place_n and_o calling_n osiand_n quest._n 18._o how_o the_o king_n labour_v to_o deliver_v daniel_n till_o the_o sun_n go_v down_o 1._o the_o king_n by_o defer_v the_o sentence_n until_o night_n may_v think_v that_o some_o opportunity_n may_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v offer_v unto_o daniel_n to_o escape_v this_o danger_n jun._n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n optimum_fw-la testimonium_fw-la danieli_fw-it that_fw-mi he_o give_v a_o good_a testimony_n unto_o daniel_n o●co_n it_o be_v like_a he_o plead_v for_o he_o show_v what_o a_o necessary_a man_n he_o be_v to_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o what_o good_a service_n he_o have_v do_v and_o that_o afterward_o there_o may_v be_v great_a miss_n of_o he_o beside_o he_o may_v dispute_v the_o cause_n with_o they_o
son_n of_o seleucus_n nicanor_n as_o justine_n write_v lib._n 41._o by_o other_o then_o here_o be_v mean_v none_o else_o but_o those_o four_o general_a captain_n who_o divide_v alexander_n kingdom_n among_o they_o yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o here_o somewhat_o to_o touch_v the_o petty_a division_n of_o the_o kingdom_n before_o it_o grow_v into_o four_o part_n and_o of_o alexander_n several_a captain_n with_o their_o end_n 14._o quest._n of_o the_o petty_a division_n of_o alexander_n kingdom_n among_o his_o several_a captain_n before_o it_o grow_v into_o four_o and_o of_o their_o mutual_a dissension_n three_o thing_n here_o shall_v be_v brief_o touch_v concern_v alexander_n captain_n 1._o of_o their_o feverall_a division_n 2._o of_o their_o civil_a war_n which_o they_o make_v one_o with_o a_o other_o 3._o of_o their_o bloody_a end_n 1._o after_o that_o alexander_n captain_n have_v by_o a_o general_a consent_n choose_v officer_n for_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n arideus_n be_v appoint_v viceroy_n during_o the_o nonage_n of_o alexander_n child_n perdiccas_n protector_n who_o antipater_n afterward_o succeed_v in_o that_o place_n seleucus_n general_a for_o the_o army_n craterus_n treasurer_n then_o they_o sort_v the_o several_a province_n among_o they_o ptolomeus_n have_v egypt_n laomedon_n syria_n philotas_n cilicia_n antigonus_n lycia_n pamphylia_n and_o prygia_n the_o great_a cassander_n caria_n menander_n lydia_n leonatus_n phrygia_n the_o less_o eumenes_n cappadoeia_fw-la and_o paphlagonia_n phiton_n media_n ex_fw-la curtio_fw-la lysimachus_z thracia_n antipater_n ma●edonia_n h._n br._n and_o justinus_n make_v mention_v beside_o of_o other_o to_o nicanor_n call_v seleucus_n be_v commit_v the_o parthian_n to_o amyntas_n the_o bactrian_n to_o neoptolemus_n the_o persian_n to_o peucestes_n the_o babylonian_n to_o philippus_n the_o hircanian_n and_o the_o other_o province_n remain_v under_o their_o government_n which_o hold_v they_o alexander_n yet_o live_v thus_o alexander_n empire_n be_v distribute_v among_o so_o many_o petty_a governor_n 15._o or_o 16._o in_o all_o can_v not_o long_o so_o continue_v under_o so_o many_o master_n but_o they_o present_o fall_v at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n demades_n witty_o compare_v alexander_n army_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a to_o cyclops_n the_o huge_a giant_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v his_o eye_n for_o as_o that_o huge_a body_n want_v light_a to_o direct_v it_o hit_v here_o and_o there_o and_o can_v not_o guide_v itself_o so_o this_o unruly_a company_n want_v a_o guide_n dash_v one_o upon_o a_o other_o as_o a_o ship_n without_o a_o pilot_n run_v upon_o the_o rock_n and_o sand_n 2._o we_o be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n then_o brief_o to_o see_v the_o civil_a dissension_n and_o war_n which_o be_v move_v among_o these_o captain_n 1._o the_o first_o war_n be_v begin_v through_o the_o ambition_n of_o perdiccas_n who_o be_v in_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o rest_n intend_v to_o marry_v cleopatra_n alexander_n sister_n and_o so_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o government_n which_o his_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o achieve_v he_o first_o enterprise_v to_o remove_v the_o let_v and_o impediment_n and_o send_v eumenes_n against_o antipater_n and_o antigonus_n and_o he_o himself_o go_v against_o ptolemy_n into_o egypt_n but_o he_o be_v slay_v of_o his_o own_o soldier_n and_o not_o long_o after_o alcetas_n his_o brother_n and_o his_o sister_n be_v slay_v also_o and_o this_o be_v his_o end_n who_o be_v the_o first_o beginner_n of_o sedition_n 2._o after_o this_o a_o second_o stir_n begin_v between_o eumenes_n and_o antigonus_n in_o which_o battle_n neoptolemus_n and_o craterus_n be_v slay_v and_o eumenes_n be_v betray_v by_o his_o soldier_n unto_o antigonus_n who_o he_o kill_v 3._o then_o cassander_n after_o he_o have_v most_o treacherous_o extinguish_v alexander_n family_n quarrel_v with_o antigonus_n from_o who_o he_o will_v have_v take_v certain_a city_n in_o asia_n and_o join_v with_o ptolemy_n and_o seleucus_n who_o fear_v antigonus_n greatness_n but_o antigonus_n vanquisheth_z cassander_n and_o make_v he_o to_o restore_v the_o city_n in_o asia_n 4._o after_o this_o antigonus_n set_v upon_o seleucus_n and_o ptolemy_n but_o first_o he_o be_v overcome_v by_o ptolemy_n at_o tyrus_n who_o take_v demetrius_n antigonus_n son_n pavilion_n with_o all_o the_o princely_a furniture_n but_o restore_v it_o again_o afterward_o demetrius_n surprise_v cille_n one_o of_o ptolomes_n captain_n and_o 8000._o man_n but_o return_v they_o safe_a to_o ptolemy_n to_o requite_v his_o former_a humanity_n and_o kindness_n 5._o then_o follow_v a_o sore_a battle_n between_o all_o of_o the_o chief_a captain_n remain_v not_o far_o from_o ephesus_n on_o the_o one_o side_n be_v seleucus_n and_o his_o son_n antiochus_n lysimachus_z and_o ptolomes_n force_n on_o the_o other_o antigonus_n the_o night_n before_o the_o battle_n antigonus_n have_v a_o vision_n wherein_o alexander_n appear_v say_v unto_o he_o that_o now_o he_o will_v go_v unto_o his_o enemy_n whereby_o antigonus_n understand_v that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o victorious_a he_o shall_v be_v overcome_v now_o and_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o for_o as_o he_o pursue_v antiochus_n in_o battle_n he_o be_v slay_v by_o seleucus_n horseman_n be_v almost_o 80._o year_n old_a his_o son_n flee_v to_o athens_n and_o renew_v the_o war_n but_o he_o be_v take_v by_o seleucus_n and_o long_o survive _v not_o his_o father_n then_o the_o rest_n divide_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antigonus_n among_o they_o 6._o the_o last_o battle_n between_o alexander_n captain_n be_v between_o lysimachus_n and_o seleucus_n this_o lysimachus_n be_v a_o man_n of_o valour_n for_o be_v familiar_a with_o callisthenes_n who_o alexander_n kill_v he_o be_v command_v to_o be_v cast_v unto_o the_o lion_n but_o he_o kill_v the_o lion_n and_o so_o escape_v for_o which_o his_o valour_n he_o be_v afterward_o much_o make_v of_o by_o alexander_n but_o this_o lysimachus_n among_o his_o virtue_n have_v enormous_a vice_n he_o marry_v two_o sister_n and_o have_v child_n by_o they_o both_o but_o the_o one_o kill_v the_o other_o child_n the_o mother_n for_o succour_v flee_v unto_o the_o other_o king_n ally_v unto_o she_o hereupon_o begin_v the_o quarrel_n between_o lysimachus_n and_o seleucus_n but_o lysimachus_n be_v overcome_v be_v slay_v melancth_v ex_fw-la pausan._n 3._o in_o the_o last_o place_n let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o their_o bloody_a end_n perdiccas_n first_o kill_v meleager_n ptolemy_n kill_v cleomenes_n perdiccas_n friend_n and_o perdiccas_n himself_o be_v slay_v of_o his_o own_o soldier_n go_v against_o ptolemy_n craterus_n and_o neoptolemus_n be_v slay_v in_o battle_n philotas_n kill_v phiton_n and_o he_o with_o eumenes_n be_v slay_v by_o antigonus_n antigonus_n fight_v against_o seleucus_n be_v kill_v lysimachus_n by_o seleucus_n seleucus_n be_v slay_v by_o ptolemy_n ceraunus_n brother_n to_o ptolemy_n philadelphus_n then_o reign_v in_o egypt_n and_o the_o same_o ceraunus_n not_o long_o after_o be_v slay_v by_o brennus_n demetrius_n antigonus_n son_n root_v out_o the_o house_n of_o cassander_n and_o so_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n hold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o macedonia_n until_o the_o roman_n possess_v it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o alexander_n captain_n 15._o quest._n why_o the_o angel_n prosecute_v the_o story_n only_o of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o south_n and_o of_o the_o north_n omit_v the_o the_o rest_n two_o reason_n may_v be_v yield_v hereof_o 1._o the_o other_o kingdom_n the_o one_o of_o asia_n the_o less_o in_o the_o north_n to_o egypt_n which_o fall_v unto_o antigonus_n after_o he_o be_v slay_v and_o vanquish_v by_o seleucus_n be_v divide_v among_o the_o other_o captain_n and_o so_o it_o be_v extinguish_v and_o the_o other_o kingdom_n of_o macedonia_n in_o the_o west_n be_v translate_v from_o cassander_n and_o his_o posterity_n unto_o demetrius_n the_o son_n of_o antigonus_n neither_o be_v it_o in_o power_n answerable_a unto_o the_o other_o two_o kingdom_n of_o syria_n and_o egypt_n and_o therefore_o these_o only_o be_v mention_v for_o vers_fw-la 5._o the_o angel_n speak_v only_o of_o two_o mighty_a kingdom_n which_o shall_v prevail_v above_o the_o rest_n 2._o an_o other_o reason_n be_v judea_n stand_v in_o the_o mid_n between_o these_o two_o kingdom_n of_o syria_n and_o egypt_n by_o which_o occasion_n these_o king_n wage_n battle_n one_o against_o a_o other_o judea_n be_v in_o the_o mid_n go_v to_o wrack_n between_o they_o melancthon_n and_o sometime_o the_o jew_n favour_v one_o and_o sometime_o a_o other_o and_o then_o the_o adversary_n part_v still_o afflict_v they_o and_o thus_o between_o these_o two_o king_n be_v the_o jew_n molest_v the_o space_n of_o three_o hundred_o year_n lyranus_fw-la and_o a_o three_o cause_n there_o be_v of_o trouble_n unto_o the_o jew_n sometime_o the_o ptolemy_n of_o egypt_n challenge_v the_o government_n and_o sovereignty_n of_o judea_n